Another World
The Project Gutenberg EBook of Another World, by
Benjamin Lumley (AKA Hermes) This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no
cost and with almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away
or re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with
this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.net
Title: Another World Fragments from the Star City of
Montalluyah
Author: Benjamin Lumley (AKA Hermes)
Release Date: August 10, 2005 [EBook #16503]
Language: English
Character set encoding: ISO-8859-1
*** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK ANOTHER
WORLD ***
Produced by Clare Boothby, Donald Perry and the Online
Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
ANOTHER
WORLD;
OR
FRAGMENTS
FROM THE STAR CITY
OF
MONTALLUYAH.
BY
HERMES.
[Illustration.]
LONDON: SAMUEL TINSLEY, 10, SOUTHAMPTON ST., STRAND,
1873.
[_The right of Translation is reserved._]
LONDON:
PRINTED BY WILLIAM CLOWES AND SONS, STAMFORD STREET,
AND CHARING CROSS.
PREFACE.
The
fact that there is a plurality of worlds, that, in other words, the planets of
our solar system are inhabited, has been so generally maintained by modern
astronomers, that it almost takes its place among the truths commonly accepted
by the large body of educated persons. As two among the many works, which bear
directly on the subject, it will be here sufficient to name Sir David
Brewster's 'More Worlds than One, the Creed of the Philosopher and the Hope of
the Christian,' and Mr. B.A. Proctor's 'Other Worlds than Ours.'
A
fragmentary account of some of the ways peculiar to the inhabitants of one of
these "star worlds," and of their moral and intellectual condition is
contained in the following pages.
When
the assertion is made that the account is derived, not from the imagination,
but from an actual knowledge of the star, it will at first receive scant
credence, and the reader will be at once inclined to class the fragments among
those works about imaginary republics and imaginary travels which, ever since
the days of Plato, have from time to time made their appearance to improve the
wisdom, impose on the credulity, or satirize the follies of mankind.
Nor
can the reader's anticipated want of faith be deemed other than natural; for,
although tests applied daily during a period extending over nearly a lifetime
have proved the source of the fragments to be such as is here represented, the
Editor feels bound to say that, notwithstanding much confirmatory evidence,
many years passed and many facts were communicated before all doubts were
completely removed from his mind.
One
great obstacle to the reader's belief that an authentic description of another
world is before him will arise from the circumstance that the means by which
such extraordinary experience was acquired are not included in the sphere of
his knowledge, and that any attempt to explain them at present would only
increase his incredulity. He would only see one enigma solved by another
apparently more insoluble than itself. The Editor, therefore, would call
especial attention to the practical value of the revelations here communicated,
convinced as he is that they are so replete with instruction to terrestial
mankind, that the difficulty of giving credence to them ought not to be
augmented by premature disclosures. Ultimately satisfied as to the origin of
the fragments, he entreats the reader not, indeed, to surrender, but simply to
suspend his judgment until he has carefully examined them, conceiving that,
apart from all external proof, they rest upon an intrinsic evidence, the force
of which it will be difficult to resist. Nay, he is even of opinion that an
impartial student will find it easier to believe in their planetary origin than
in their emanating from an ordinary human brain. The practical value of the
facts, considered apart from their source, will excuse his request not to be
too hastily judged.
The
people to whom the fragments relate are, it will be found, not only human, but
constituents of a highly civilized and even polished society. Their notions of
good and evil, of happiness and misery correspond to ours, and though they
employ different means, the objects they pursue are the same with those sought
by terrestrial philanthropists. Health, education, marriage, the removal of disease,
the prevention of madness and of crime, the arts of government, the regulation
of amusement, the efficient employment of physical forces--themes so often
discussed here--have equally occupied the attention of our planetary brethren,
although, as will be seen, in the results of our studies we differ not a
little. This is not a story of Anthropophagi, or men whose heads do grow
beneath their shoulders, which can merely excite wonder, but a record of actual
men, who, widely separated from us in the ocean of space, are beings with whom
we can sympathise much more than with the inhabitants of the uncivilized
portions of our own globe.
The
reader will now begin to understand what is meant when the Editor calls
attention to the practical value of most of his communications, and invites
consideration of the fragments, as suggestive of much that concerns the welfare
of mankind, the question as to their source being provisionally left open. The
man of science, the poet, the metaphysician, the philanthropist, the musician,
the observer of manners, even the general reader who merely seeks to be amused,
will, it is hoped, find something interesting in the following pages. Let all,
therefore, taste the fruit and judge of its flavour, though they do not behold
the tree; profit by the diamonds, though they know not how they were extracted
from the mine; accept what is found to be wholesome and fortifying in the
waters, though the source of the river is unknown.
Lest,
in thus expatiating on the value of his communications, the Editor should be
thought to have overstepped the bounds of good taste, he would have it
perfectly understood that he is not speaking of his own productions, and that
whatever the merit of the fragments may be, that merit does not belong to
himself. He is an Editor and an Editor only; and he therefore feels himself as
much at liberty to express his opinion of the contents of the following pages
as the most impartial critic.
He
will even admit that he is not blind to their defects and shortcomings. If the
fragments had been less fragmentary, and fuller information had been offered on
the various subjects which fall under consideration, he would have been better
satisfied. Nevertheless, he reflects that it would be hardly reasonable to
expect in facts made known under exceptional circumstances, that fulness of
detail which we have a right to demand, when on our own planet we essay to make
discoveries at the cost only of labour and research. He looks upon the
fragments as "intellectual aerolites," which have dropped here,
uninfluenced by the will of man; as varied pieces detached from the mass of
facts which constitute the possessions of another planet, and rather as thrown
by nature into rugged heaps than as having been symmetrically arranged by the
hand of an artist. Want of unity under these circumstances is surely excusable.
One
observation as to a matter of mere detail. Words, in the language of the Star,
are occasionally given in letters which represent the sounds only, and will
often be found to resemble words in some of our ancient and modern languages.
The very name of the City "Montalluyah," to which all the fragments
refer, is apparently compounded of heterogeneous roots, one of Aryan the other
of Semitic origin. These seeming accidents, if such they be, must not be
attributed to either carelessness or design on the part of the Editor; nor does
he attempt to explain them. The reader may, if he please, account for the
causes of resemblance by considering that the number of articulate sounds is
limited, and that, therefore, the variety of words cannot be altogether
boundless; or he may take higher ground, and assume that in whatever planet
spoken, all languages have the Same Divine Origin.
In
conclusion: When these revelations or others derived from the same source have
succeeded in establishing a confidence between the Editor and his readers, it
is more than probable that the secret of the source itself will be disclosed.
That disclosure made in due season will bring to light some unprecedented, but
most interesting facts, and will establish the important truth, that the soul
of man is IMMATERIAL and IMMORTAL.
CONTENTS.
INTRODUCTION
Page xxiii
I.--MONTALLTUYAH.
One
of the Star worlds--Strangeness of its customs--The Narrator and his
aspirations--Former state of Montalluyah--Wars--Increase of population and
decrease of supplies--Can man be brought to seek knowledge as ardently as
money?--The Narrator's meditations, labours, and advancement--Faith
II.--VYORA.
The
beggar seeks admission to the Palace--The incident which brings him to the
Narrator--Some account of Vyora--Appointed Chief of the
Character-divers--Reflection
III--PERSEVERANCE.
Maturing
plans--How received by the Counsellors--Narrator's resolution--Prepares for
death--His triumph--Subjects of Legislation
IV.--LIGHT
FROM DARKNESS.
Secret
powers in Nature--Effectually wielded by the Good only--False
Prophets--Narrator carries out his plans without bloodshed--Great feature of
the System--Mighty consequences--Evils forced to contribute to
Good--Examples--Insects--Hippopotami--The Fever Wind--Lightning--The
Sun--Seasons of Darkness--Fears of the People--Darkness changed to Light--The
City radiant--Music and rejoicing
V.--CHARACTER-DIVERS--EDUCATION.
Grave
duties entrusted to them--Stronghold of evils to be eradicated--Men of Genius
following antipathetic occupations--Early eradication of faults and development
of qualities--Visits to Schools--Defects--One routine for all
characters--Neglecting minor qualities in Boys of Genius--Precept-cramming--Bad
habits--Character-divers created--Sole occupation to discover Child's early
tendencies--Duties distinct from those of Preceptors or Fathers of
Knowledge--Germ of evils destroyed
VI.--CORRECTION
OF FAULTS.
Remedies
employed vary with characteristics--Absence of violent punishment--Children to
be raised, not degraded--Animals not corrected by blows--Example--Pupil not
corrected by the imposition of tasks--Child encouraged to regard study as a
privilege--Correction effected by gentleness--Time, labour, &c., bestowed
unsparingly--Even when fault seems eradicated fresh tests applied--Adult
offenders--Child of genius watched with reference to superior
refinement--Economy of sparing nothing in educating the future man--Lists of
faults occupying attention of the Character-divers--Results--Small beginnings
lead to incurable vices and disease
VII.--CHARACTER-DIVERS.
Secondary
position of Tutors in former times--Now honoured--Aid given by the
Character-divers, &c., to Narrator--Young men of special aptitude educated
for the office--Their astuteness--Example--Subjects of tesselated
pavements--Zolea--Early evidence of artistic talent often deceptive--Narrator's
early talent indicating him as a harpist--Guided to other studies
VIII.--THE
STAR CITY.
Power
of the Sun--Colours and forms in the sky--Situation of Montalluyah--External
World Cities--Reasons for uniting them-- Peculiarities--Straight lines--Variety
of colour, &c.--Subterranean seas--Great cataract and water-lifts form
background of palaces and statues--Hanging bridges--Health
studied--Baths--Violet streams-- Trees--Birds--Artificial
nests--Perfumes--Harmonious sounds--Chariot wheels and horse's hoofs
noiseless--Red light--City full of animation--Recurring change of scene
IX.--THE
SUSPENDED MOUNTAIN.
Elevation
of tides immense--The aerial mountain--Electric agencies--Sea carries away the
heart of the mountain--Receding waters leave upper part suspended--Mountain arm
stretches out through the air over land below and over the sea--THE GREAT
CATARACT--Upper City built on Suspended Mountain--The Middle and Lower Cities
built on indent and foot of mountain--PAST CATASTROPHES--Threatened
dangers--Terrible consequences--Principle of preventing evils--Stupendous work
undertaken--The wonder of Montalluyah
X.--THE
MOUNTAIN SUPPORTER.
Dimensions--Thickness
of walls--Interior area--How utilised--Means of ascending and
descending--Stages constructed at different heights to facilitate works during
progress--Materials, provisions, &c., raised by electric power--HUGE HEAVY
BLOCKS LIGHTENED BY ELECTRICITY--Ornamentation of the
Tower--Ravine-metal--Episodes of the Narrator's reign--Ascent and
descent--Great difference of atmosphere above and below--Peculiarity in
Electric Telegraph--Colour of atmosphere at different heights--Animalculae and
ova--Grandeur of the Mountain Supporter---Curious effect when viewed from a
distance
XI--ELECTRICITY
IN MONTALLUYAH.
Important
facts formerly unknown--One electricity only supposed to exist--Not then
utilised for locomotion, &c.--Paucity of contrivance for collecting
electricities--How the scientific men supported their theory--Like causes
produce like effects--Many kinds of electricity--Means of drawing out and concentrating
electricities discovered--Man, beasts, birds, &c., possess an electricity
of their own--All differ--Huge fish--Docks for extracting electricity
from--Electric store-house--Non-conducting pouches--The attracting electricity
adapted to each body is well known--MODE OF CATCHING WILD BIRDS
XII.--THE
PAIN-LULLER.
Means
formerly employed--Vivisection and surgical operations painless--Nerves of
sensation only, affected by the luller--Energy of the functions considered
essential--Pain-luller, how discovered--The Nebo bird and the child--The broken
limbs and absence of pain--Discovery
XIII.--THE
MICROSCOPE.
Properties
of optical instruments increased by electricity-- CONCENTRATED LIGHT--The
illuminated worm--Light attracted by the enticer-machine--Concentrated light in
Music--Human voice and musical instruments--Union between the soul and
perishable portions of man--Concentrated light within us--Similarity of terms
applied to the brain and to vision--Strength to the intellectual
powers--EXPERIMENT ON LIVING MAN--Electrical currents in brain--How
agitated--Rarity of the experiments--Serious consequences to
patient--Conditions imposed, and advantages secured, to him--Not allowed to
marry
XIV.--PHYSICIANS--DISEASE
GERMS.
High
rank of Physicians--Former and present duties--Periodical
visitations--Microscopes--Perspiration indicating disease--Exact nature of
disease not shown--Example--Ordinary appearance of perspiration--Lung disease
and consumption--Lung dew--"The Scraper"--The breath
XV.--MADNESS.
Minute
divisions of brain examined by microscope--Former neglect--Early indications
rarely noticed--Supposed lunatics often wiser than their keepers--An
instance--The man's statements laughed at--World believe him a confirmed
madman--Madness not now assumed from seeming absurdities--Thoughts formerly
scoffed at, now acknowledged facts--Minute divisions of brain responding to
trains of thought--Effectual remedies for earliest symptoms--Cure of developed
madness--Former error which prevented cure--The disease does not exist in the overworked
portion of the brain
XVI.--THE
DEATH SOLACE--INSECTS.
Insects
contain valuable electricities--Whole crops destroyed by them--Mode of
capturing, &c.--Impurities removed by insects--The DEATH SOLACE
XVII.--INTERNAL
CITIES--SUNSHINE PICTURES
Special
precautions against excessive heat in the extreme season--Internal cities
built in galleries--Their advantages--How light admitted--Flowers--Beauty and
odours increased by electricity--Communication between the palaces in the
External and Internal World--Narrator's summer-palace--The pictures
representing principal events of his reign--Sun power utilised--Sunshine: how fixed
on the canvas
XVIII.--THE
PICTURES.
Subjects
of some of the pictures in the Narrator's "Internal World" Palace
XIX.--WOMAN.
Tendency
of her education--Happy and contented--Marked difference in education of the
two sexes--Beauty aided by early care--Former practices and
consequences--Ravages of time--Women now lovely in age as in youth--Beauty
regarded as a precious gift from Heaven--Cosmetics for its
"preservation"--Wrinkles--Skin and complexion--Hands and
feet--CHOOSING BY HAND--How effected--CHOOSING BY FOOT--Expedients used when
hand or foot inclined to coarseness--GIRL'S DORMITORIES--Cleanliness--Separate
sleeping-rooms--Reasons--Communication with night-watchers--Precautions--Mode
adopted to ensure early rising-- Prayer not till after repast--Reason why old
custom changed--Careful discipline until marriage--Luxurious habits permitted
to married ladies--Instance of the elastic "frame" cushion--The
self-acting fan
XX.--CHOICE
OF A HUSBAND.
Means
taken to secure congenial husband--Marriage councils--Choice of husband, how
arranged--Maiden's right to nominate--The thirty-one evenings--The girl, how
distinguished--Gentlemen who wish their pretensions to be favourably
viewed--The unwilling--Efforts of pretenders--Agitation on the thirty-first
evening--How the maiden proclaims her choice--The presentation of
flowers--Subsequent meeting of the parties--Betrothal--Consequence of maiden
failing to declare preference--Second meeting--Third meeting rare
XXI.--THE
DRESS OF SHAME--SUN COLOURS.
Trust
reposed in marriage councils never abused--The dress of shame--Rich costumes of
married ladies--Brilliant colours imparted by the sun--The silver-green
silk--Sun silk--Women instructed in the ART OF PLEASING--Former habits of
married women--Example on children--Deceit
XXII.--COSTUMES.
LADY'S
COSTUME--The waistcoat--Tunic--Trousers--Anklets--Trimmings--
Colours--Sandals--HEAD ORNAMENTS--Soles to protect the feet--The fan--Precious
stones--Turbans--Canopy--Long veils--Distinctive feature for the
unmarried--Elaborate costumes allowed after marriage--GENTLEMAN'S COSTUME
XXIII.--PREPARATIONS
FOR THE MARRIAGE.
The
civil marriage--Purification of the bride--The hair--The tree-comb--Marriage
costume--Marriage ceremony repeated after birth of each child--Religious
ceremony--Suspended in case of dissensions--Efforts for
reconciliation--Contingencies provided for--An instance
XXIV.--FLOWERS.
Very
beautiful--Their names given to Stars and to Women--Flower language: long
conversations carried on by means of Flowers--Instances of Flower
Language--Displeasure expressed through the medium of Flowers--Instances of
Flowers with meanings attached
XXV.--FLOWERS
IMPROVED BY ELECTRICITY.
Mode
in which nature operates--Vitality of seed--Consequence of injury--Production
of leaves--Of colour--United electricities form gatherings--Important
discovery--Sap, the reservoir of electricity--PROCESS FOR CHANGING FORM--PROCESS
FOR CHANGING COLOUR--For giving fragrance--THE LUANIA--SUN-FORCING
XXVI.--SONG
OF ADMIRATION.
(_Explanation
of terms used in the Song of Admiration._)
The
Spangled Mountain--The reviled beauty--Slander and its promulgators--The Legend
of Zacosta--Fall of her Tormentors--Happiness of the higher order of
Spirits--Slander regarded with horror--Motives of the Slanderers--The King of
the Air--The loving little animal--The ingenious instrument for discovering
diamonds--The pet animal--The Meleeta--The Turvee Insect--Shooting Stars--Whale
Electricity--The Martolooti--The Flower of Grace--The Chilarti--The
Allmanyuka--The perfume of the everlasting gulf--The Hippopotamus hide--Fat of
the Serpent's head--The Mestua Mountain--Wet thy feet--Stainers' fount--
Water--The Mountain Supporter
XXVII.--SYLIFA.
XXVIII.--THE
YOUNG GIRL RESTORED.
Madness
not formerly recognised until violence shown--The GIRL AFFECTED WITH MONOMANIA.
XXIX.--THE
LITTLE GOATHERD.
XXX.--DECORATIONS
FOR AGE AND MERIT.
Worn
as distinctive marks--Age entitles woman to privileges--Age regarded as an
honour--Orders of the Matterode, and Mountain Supporter--Qualified decoration,
&c.--ADVOCATES of the individual and of society--Privilege belonging to
every woman
XXXI.--BEAUTY.
How
ideal of beauty formerly obtained--Not equal to the actual living model--Beauty
now the rule--Longevity--Beauty in old age--Summary of expedients--Value of the
course adopted--Importance of care from earliest infancy--Subject of
babies--Importance of little things--Maladies owing to injudicious treatment of
children--March of "small" effects--Precautions now taken
XXXII.--INFANTS'
EXERCISE-MACHINES.
Value
of minute precautions--Diseases caused by want of healthy exercises--Accidents
to the infant--Blows on the head--The inventions of Drahna--The four sets of
machines--The TEETH--The eye--The nostrils--The tongue--Air, &c.
XXXIII.--GYMNASTICS.
An
essential part of the boys' education--Formerly same exercises for all--Now
adapted to physical organization--Medical man observes effects--The heat of the
brain a test--Bathing--Leaping--TREE-EARTH BATHS--Qualities of the earth about
various trees--The oak, the weeping-willow, elm, horse-chestnut, &c.
XXXIV.--THE
AMUSEMENT GALLERY.
Description--Girls'
amusement gallery--Boys--Different natures and characters revealed--The
Character-divers
XXXV.--PRAYER.
For
Children are short--Services adapted to different ages--Evils attendant on
former system--Present course--Subjects of Sermons-- Children encouraged in
affection to Parents, &c.--Preacher assisted by method of
education--Objections to Parrot-like repetitions
XXXVI.--FLOCKS
AND HERDS.
Care
taken of animals--Change of pasture--Irrigation--Causes of diseases formerly prevalent--Shade--Illness--Great
increase of flocks and herds--THE MALE ONLY USED FOR FOOD--Consequences of
killing the mother--In slaughtering, all painful process avoided--Mode
adopted--Wholesomeness of meat tested by analyzation of blood--PROTECTION OF MEAT
FROM INSECTS--Protective Infusion--CRUELTY TO ANIMALS--Punishment
XXXVII.--THE
ALLMANYUKA.
Determination
to discover the germ of disease--The people afflicted with a painful
malady--Children not attacked--Hypothesis--Stimulating spices--Anatomical examination--Decree
forbidding use of favourite condiments--The spices collected--Temporary
substitute provided--Meditation and prayer for help--The grafting and the
eventual result-- Incomplete--The cream-lemon vegetable--Mode of
proceeding--The "Insertion"--The root-oil--The little white bud--The
anxious watching--The basket and its contents--The testing--Qualities of the
Allmanyuka--The people's praise--The Tootmanyoso's gratitude--Results different
from any before obtained--Description
XXXVIII.--PAPER.
Made
from leaves of trees--Peculiarities--Process of manufacture-- Healthful
fragrance--Colour--"Natural" paper--GOLDEN COLOURED PAPER--Its
connection with the Allmanyuka--The incident which led to its discovery
XXXIX.--CONSUMPTION--THE
ÉMEUTE.
Consumption--Why
generally beyond cure--Erroneous views--The patient--Examination by the
doctors--Their mistake--Narrator's belief--Potion administered--Death--Cause
discovered--Mode of detecting and curing the disease in its germ--Assemblage of
the multitude--Episode of the mother and the child--The sequel
XL.--THE
HARP.
The
principal musical instrument--Description--Four sets of chords--Strings of
electricity--Marvellous variation and depression of the notes--Echoes and
responses--Diapason changed to an extraordinary extent--Different characters of
sound produced--Examples--Harp language; how taught--Accompaniments--Harp
beautiful as a work of sculptural art--Movement of birds, flowers, and foliage,
and exhalation of perfume in accord with the music--How idea was suggested
XLI.--SOCIAL
INTERCOURSE.
Amusements
enjoined--Learned men prone to seclusion--Wisdom of requiring studious men to
cultivate social relations questioned--Twenty men selected for the
experiment--Result--The works of the "Seclusionists" and of the
"Society-Sympathisers"--The MONOMANIAC--His eccentricities and
cure--Convert to the Narrator's views
XLII.--THEATRES--ENTERTAINMENTS.
Arenas--Electricity--Why
arenas open to the sky--Games exhibited-- Beautiful effects produced--MAN and
HORSE--The FLYING CHILDREN--WILL--DEAF AND DUMB CHILD--The MONKEYS--Tragic
Drama--Races and public games--Parties for children--Labouring people--The
aged--Districts--The middle-aged--INTRODUCTION of strangers--Ceremony
observed--ATTRACTING-MACHINE
XLIII--SHIPS.
Peculiar
form and construction--Former shape--Effective model sought--"Swan
Ships"--Dangers of navigation--Ship sometimes submerged--Sufferings of the
passengers for want of air--Remedy--The swan's head--Captain's
quarters--Vessels propelled by electric power--Machinery--Steering and stoppage
of the vessel--TIMBER FOR SHIPS--How seasoned--How protected against insects in
every part--The COMPASS--The ANCHOR--Peculiarity of its formation: how let out
and hauled in--The Bison ropes
XLIV.--PICTURES
FROM WATER.
Interesting
discoveries--Microscopic pictures transmitted from a distance--Picture made of
a landscape and persons afar off--Picture of swan-vessels and passengers--How
effected--Bottom of the sea rendered visible
XLV.--THE
HIPPOPOTAMUS.
Invaluable--Antipathy
to human beings--Hippopotamus' hide--Impervious to water--Resistance to
destroying forces--All parts of the animal utilised--Parts subservient to the
beautiful--Hippopotamus' land--Numerous herds--Their keepers--How attired--The
herb antipathetic to hippopotami--How discovered--Experiment with the young
beast--Antipathetic solution keeps animals away from cities--They love
fresh-water rivers--The Aoe waters prejudicial to man--Mode of rearing
Hippopotami--Precautions adopted--Why they have not been able to rear animal in
Western Europe--Recommendations--Habits of the animal--The
hippopotami--dance--How the young one is separated from the mother--How a
hippopotamus is removed from the herd--The food of the hippopotamus in general
XLVI.--WILD
ANIMALS.
The
Serpent--The Boa--Professors to examine medicinal and other properties--Modes
of capturing wild beasts--Huntsmen--The iron-work net--The watch-hut--The
bait--Dead animals not allowed in the city--Habits of the tiger--THE TIGER AND
THE CHILD--THE UNICORN
XLVII.--THE
SUN.
The
palace--Communication with auxiliary tower--Observatory--STAR INSTRUMENT
constructed--Secrets revealed--Inhabitants and atmospheres of the stars
differ--Invisible beings--The SUN-OCEAN, Mountains, and
Continents--Winds--Attracted by the heat--Brilliancy increased by
reflection--Every planet has electricity sympathetic or antipathetic--Different
appearance in Montalluyah--Fixed stars--Comets--Overflowings of the
waters--Waters in space--Conclusion
INTRODUCTION.
By
introducing the reader to "Another World," the Editor does not lead
him into a region to which the Earth has no affinity. The Planet to which the
following fragments refer not only belongs to the same solar system as our own,
but also presents like physical aspects. In it, as here, are to be found land
and water--mountains, rivers, seas, lakes, hills, valleys, ravines, cataracts
alternating with each other; though in consequence of more potent electrical
agencies the contrasts between these various objects are frequently abrupt and
decided to a degree to which we can here offer no comparison. The other world
about to be described is, in fact, essentially another Earth--widely differing,
indeed, from ours in its details, but still subjected to the same natural laws.
Its inhabitants, like devout persons here, look forward with reverent feeling
towards the abode of the blest. To a purely spiritual or angelic region these
fragments do not relate.
The
name of "Montalluyah," which more immediately belongs to the chief
city in the planet, is not incorrectly extended so as to include the entire
sphere. This new world is not made up of separate countries and mutually
independent states like those of the Earth, but, forming one kingdom, is
governed by one supreme Ruler, assisted by twelve kings inferior to him in rank
and power.
The
speaker in the fragments (which may almost be said to take the form of an
autobiography) was the son of one of the twelve kings, who by his genius and
worth became "Tootmanyoso," or supreme Ruler. In the planet his name
is mentioned with even more reverence than, by different peoples, is paid to
that of Zoroaster, Solon, Lycurgus, or Alfred; but he has this peculiarity that
he does not fade, like many other great legislators, into mythical
indistinctness, but is himself the exponent of his own polity.
It
must not, however, be supposed that this great legislator was the first to
rescue his world from mere barbarism. The founder of civilization in
Montalluyah seems to have been a very ancient sage named Elikoia, to whom brief
reference is made in the following pages. Prior to the reign of our Tootmanyoso
the people had passed through various stages of civilization, under the
guidance of many wise and good men. Still the polity was defective, for the
country remained subject to crime, misery, and disease.
The
proverb that "Prevention is better than cure," to which everybody
gives unhesitating assent, but which is often forgotten in practice, lies at
the root of most of the reforms, both moral and physical, effected by the
Tootmanyoso. The policy of prevention--that is, of destroying maladies of mind
and body in the germ, before they had been allowed to spread their poison--was
one of his leading principles. Under his influence, the physicians of
Montalluyah made it less their duty to cure than to prevent disease, therein
differing widely from our practitioners, who are not usually called to exercise
their skill until a malady has been developed, and has perhaps assumed large
proportions.
Under
his influence likewise it was thought better to diminish moral evil by extirpating
faults in the child, rather than by punishing crimes in the man.
Another
prominent feature in the polity of the great Legislator of Montalluyah is the
occupation of every person in the intellectual or physical pursuit for which he
has been fitted by natural qualifications, developed and fortified by culture.
Nobility, position, and wealth are made to depend on merit alone, ascertained
by a mechanism which neither favouritism, ignorance, nor accident can affect.
These laws may for an instant seem to partake of a democratic tinge; but it
will be clearly perceived that the regulations concerning the institutions of
property and marriage are diametrically opposite to those which have rendered
the theories of Communists so generally hateful.
Many
of the Tootmanyoso's reforms resulted from an application of extraordinary
scientific discoveries to the purposes of life. Under the law which determined
that the "right man" should, in the most extensive sense of the
phrase, always be in the "right place," discoveries were made of
which the most acute investigators of earlier times had had no conception, and
the newly-acquired ability of wielding electrical, mechanical, and other forces
had momentous political consequences. Armed with powers previously unknown, the
Tootmanyoso found comparatively easy the successive steps towards the happiness
and well-being of his world, where a series of insuperable obstacles would have
been presented to the wisest of his predecessors.
Of
the physical agencies mentioned in the following pages, that of electricity
will be found especially prominent. Both the knowledge and the manipulation of
electricity have assumed in Montalluyah proportions far beyond those known to
us. The electric fluid is there employed for the most various purposes: for
locomotion, for lightening heavy bodies, for increasing the power of optical
instruments, for the detection and eradication of the germs of disease, for
increasing the efficiency of musical instruments--in a word, for the
advancement of the world in all that belongs to morality, science, and art.
To
some readers the plural form, "Electricities," which frequently
appears in the following pages, might seem a strange innovation. The Editor
therefore states, by way of anticipation, that in certain important points the
electrical science of Montalluyah differs from, if it is not opposed to, some
of the principles accepted here. In Montalluyah it is an ascertained fact that
everything organic or inorganic possesses an electricity of its own, each kind
differing from the others in one or more important properties. Glimmerings of
the progress effected in electricity and other sciences, including the
knowledge and application of Sun-power, may be deduced from the facts contained
in the fragments. Still, those glimmerings are but as scattered rays of light
in the horizon, which, in the belief of the Editor, are mere precursors of
other revelations at least equally interesting. It may be said generally that
by the fragments here given, showing how the Narrator, uniting in his own
person all the highest qualities of a Legislator and a Ruler, occupied himself
with the discovery and application of means for the reduction of evils to their
smallest possible proportions, not only giving new laws of wondrous grandeur and
beauty, but eventually rendering compliance with them easy and even
delightful--that by these fragments a truly stupendous polity is but partially
revealed.
The
Editor has reason to believe, though it cannot be stated with confidence, that
Montalluyah is the world known to us as the planet Mars. Even in the following
pages indications will be found of physical features harmonizing with
observations made here on that planet. On the other hand, there is the seeming
objection, that whereas Mars is more distant than the Earth from the Sun, the
Sun appears much smaller, and its heat and light are less intense, on the Earth
than in Montalluyah. These facts would, in the first instance, seem to
indicate, not a longer, but a shorter distance of Montalluyah from the central
luminary, and to point rather to Venus or Mercury than to Mars. But, according
to the scientific theories of Montalluyah, the amount of light and heat
received from the Sun, and the aspect of that luminary, are governed, not so
much by proximity, as by the nature and electricity of the recipient planet and
its surrounding atmosphere. In illustration of this point the fact is stated in
one of the fragments, that in Montalluyah the power of the telescope is
regulated, not by the distance, but by the attractive or repulsive electricity
of the planet under observation, and that more power is often required to view
a nearer planet than one which is far more distant.
The
question as to which of the laws and customs of Montalluyah can be beneficially
imitated, wholly or partially, on our Earth, and which of them merely pertain
to physical accidents or to a peculiar state of society, will afford matter for
reflection. It must not be supposed that, by relating the facts revealed to
him, the Editor would recommend all the laws which they suggest as capable of
imitation here. Although they are based on the principle of securing happiness
to the community, more especially to its worthiest members, he would no more
think of recommending them for adoption in their entirety than of upholding the
"Swan-Ship" of Montalluyah as a model for the steamers that cross the
Atlantic. Nevertheless, he trusts that his record of the
"regulations" of "Another World," even where they do not
admit of imitation, may serve to call attention to the evils which they were
intended to remedy in Montalluyah, and which certainly nourish in all their bad
luxuriance here.
ANOTHER
WORLD.
I.
MONTALLUYAH.
"You
forsake this earthly form which goes to dust, but you still live on for ever
and ever....
"This
life is but the shadow of what your future lives will be."
The
Heavens are studded with stars, works of an Almighty Creator; their pale rays
give but a feeble indication of the glorious brightness of worlds, many peopled
by beings of a beauty, goodness, and power excelling all that human
understanding can conceive.
By
the grace of Him whose might embraces the universe, I will speak of a star
where the inhabitants are formed like the people of the Earth, and as the dawn
of day gradually discloses earth's marvellous beauties, so shall my revelations
throw light on the customs of that star-world for whose well-being I worked
with devoted love.
Some
of my world's ways will appear strange to you. Remember that they belong to
another planet, another country, another people, so that like wise travellers
in a distant land, you should for a time lull your own world's prejudice, and
accompany me in thought to Montalluyah, for such is the name of the city where
I lived.
I
was the son of one of the twelve kings called Tshialosoli, rulers of the
country.
These
Tshialosoli are less powerful than kings in your world, there being a ruler
with full power over them and the whole State, who is called in our language
"Tootmanyoso," or "The Father of the World."
All
my youthful zeal and strength were applied to study and deep reflection. The
most able men were appointed to superintend my education. I outstripped my
masters.
The
extent of my knowledge, judgment, and foresight filled with wonder the most
learned and powerful in the land. Their approving praise did but encourage me
onwards in the search for knowledge.
People
related everywhere how wondrous were the gifts of the heaven favoured student.
Early
inspired by the desire to benefit my fellow-creatures, I often asked myself
why, in a world teeming with blessings, so much suffering existed? and why
endless riches in the seas, in the air, in the earth, remained unworked as
though they did not exist for the use of man?
At
that time the state of civilization and knowledge in Montalluyah was in many
respects not unlike that of the most civilized countries of your world. The
religion of fire had long been replaced by the worship of the living God, and
morality and goodness were respected by most, preached by many, and practised
by a few.
Wars
were waged with relentless cruelty by brother against brother, bad passions
ruled, the rich oppressed the poor, and became in turn the victims of their own
excesses, and vice, disease, and misery were rampant throughout the land.
We
had money of various metals and precious stones. The greed to possess money was
the cause of great crimes and loss of power. I asked myself whether men could
not be brought to seek knowledge and goodness as ardently as they sought money?
I
could not then answer the question, but saw that, could this be done, the
boundaries of intelligence being everywhere extended, the discovery of
never-ending fructifying resources would follow, with the means also of
multiplying those already known.
Notwithstanding
wars and pestilence, the numbers of our people had largely increased, whilst
our stocks had seriously diminished, and scarcity and dearth afflicted my
world.
The
increasing numbers of the population would, I saw, become a means of plenty, by
supplying additional numbers and power to the phalanx of nature's workmen,
each, with redoubled skill fitly applied, joyfully labouring in his sphere to
create abundance and secure the general well-being.
I
applied myself with unwavering perseverance to the study of humanity and the
arts of government, and soon found that like aspirations had ruled many wise
and good men in the different ages of my planet. I applied myself to the
knowledge of their great wisdom and many precepts, and sought to discover why,
notwithstanding the truthfulness and beauty of the golden lessons of these
sages, and the eloquence and persuasion of their words, corruption and ruin
still so largely prevailed.
Not
content with meditating on what had been done and written, I attended the
schools, observed the children's ways, and the mode of educating and rearing
the husbandmen of Nature's vineyard. I visited the hospitals for the sick, and
the theatres of anatomy. I examined into the causes of disease, and the effects
of the existing remedies. I visited the prisons, and studied the results of
punishment and the causes of crime. I visited the poor in their hovels, the
rich in their palaces; I observed mankind in various phases, and as it were
dissected men's minds and passions. I saw everywhere never-ending power in man
and nature recklessly wasted or turned against the community.
My
labours were rewarded by frequent advancement. Honours did but stimulate me to
further exertions; the greater I became the more I applied myself, ever
thirsting for knowledge and the power of doing good, till at length, after
passing the severest tests, I became Tootmanyoso (Father of the World), and
head of the State.
Then
indeed my real labours began. Light from Heaven had enabled me to see the
causes of the evils afflicting my planet. I had now to apply remedies for
changing the poisoned torrents into sources of fertility, refreshment, and
delight.
The
dangers and obstructions before me were immense. I felt that no unaided mortal
power could overcome them; but I was encouraged to believe that, "like a
chariot at full speed, which turns a narrow and dangerous corner, so would I
pass over my mountains of difficulty, and run free in the wide space beyond."
I
resolved with all the concentrated ardour of my soul to persevere.
Day
by day I applied myself to the work, and invoked the aid of my Creator.
My
harp was my constant companion. I was a great harpist; and when gratitude for
some new light choked my utterance, I made the harp speak in accents and in
language[1] that gave fresh inspiration to my soul.
[Footnote
1: Musical sounds in Montalluyah have a meaning as easily understood as spoken
words. Our harp is different to yours, and will be described hereafter.]
II.
VYORA.
"The
humble and the proud are equally subject to the decrees of Heaven; and often
one is raised and the other brought low."
The
system of education which I early inaugurated soon gave to my hand men of
wondrous intelligence, fervid and eloquent emissaries, having at heart the
success of my doctrines.
These
men, themselves convinced, and earnest to convince others, I sent in all directions
to prepare the people, and to discover genius and intelligence under whatever
garb concealed, for I had determined that all should be encouraged to use their
powers for their own and the general good, and be advanced accordingly.
Many
things had happened to strengthen this, my early resolve. One incident I will
now relate.
A
beggar made many attempts to gain admission to my palace, but was turned away
with blows; his prayers that he might speak with me were received with
derision,--he was looked upon as a madman, and not allowed to pass the outer
gate.
This
same beggar--Vyora, by name,--saved the life of a little boy, the child of one
of my leading men called Usheemee, "Men of truth."
The
child would have been crushed to death under the wheels of a chariot, moved by
electricity and drawn by fleet horses,[1] had not this same beggar rushed
forward, regardless of peril, and saved the boy.
[Footnote
1: The beauty of our horses, the desire that the chariots should not be
cumbersome, and the steep hills everywhere in Montalluyah, are the reasons why
electricity is not used alone. When the horses stop, the electric action is
suspended, and the momentum is neutralized simultaneously by a governor or
regulator.]
The
man refused money, and for his sole reward requested that he might be brought
into my presence. The father told me of this, which seemed to him the more
strange inasmuch as the petitioner refused to say what he required of me.
When
brought before me, I asked Vyora what he sought? He replied that his whole
desire, his soul's longing, was to be appointed a teacher, that he might
instruct youth, and see little children grow wiser around him.
I
regarded the man attentively, and put many searching questions. He answered all
in a remarkable way, and gave proofs of intellect, knowledge, and perception
beyond the masters who had passed through the required ordeals, and was so
gentle and modest withal, that it was delightful to speak with him.
The
father of Vyora had possessed wealth, but from the cruelty and oppression of an
enemy mightier than he, had lost both fortune and life, and at his death left a
family dependent on charity.
The
widow, a woman of remarkable gifts and keen sensibilities, prostrated by grief,
died soon after, carried off suddenly by a disease called, "Karni
ferola," "Absorption of the vitality," [1] which at that time
baffled the skill of the physicians, who indeed had seldom suspected its
presence till the disease was beyond cure.
[Footnote
1: Answering to "consumption;" this disease is now detected and cured
in its germ.]
Vyora,
himself an emaciated boy, unfitted for physical labour, was the eldest of many
brothers and sisters, who looked up to him in their hunger. He was driven to
beg their food.
After
the poor man had passed easily all the ordeals, I appointed him "a
Character-Diver," to discover the qualities and detect the faults of
little children,[2] and raised him from indigence to affluence.
[Footnote
2: See p. 19.]
The
ability, industry, and wisdom of the man, and the good he did were beyond all
praise, and I soon appointed him head of all the Character-Divers in
Montalluyah.
This
incident, with many others, engaged my most serious reflection. But for an
accident, the powers of a truly superior mind would have been lost to humanity!
Vyora was but the type of numbers, evidencing how capriciously wealth and
honours were then distributed.
III.
PERSEVERANCE.
"Go
onward! lose not faith. Let the goodness of God support you, and the beauty and
fruitfulness of the work cheer you; and when you are blest with success forget
not the source whence all blessings come."
Several
years passed before my plans were matured. I reduced all to writing. On one
side of the page I noted my resolutions, with the means of carrying them out;
on the other side, every objection that could be raised: on a third page I
wrote down the answers. Every objection was invited, every difficulty
anticipated, and every detail thoroughly weighed; nothing was thought too great
or too insignificant.
I
submitted the whole to my wisest councillors, and encouraged them to speak
their inmost thoughts. They were lost in admiration, but entreated me to
abandon my design. My life, they said, would be the penalty were I to attempt
to carry out any part of my projects.
Some
said that the design would be beautiful as the subject of a poem-- as the
aspiration of a great mind to arrive at an ideal perfection, which could not however
be realised until evil itself had ceased to exist. That to attempt to move the
Mestua Mountain[1] would be a task not less hopeless: that I might as well
endeavour to walk up our great Cataract[2] without being engulfed in the sea of
foaming waters! Not one offered encouragement to proceed with the good work.
[Footnote
1: Supposed to be the largest and firmest of mountains, which, since its first
upheaving, has resisted the inroads of our mighty seas, as well as the most
violent electrical disturbances of our world.]
[Footnote
2: See p. 44.]
Neither
their arguments nor their prayers deterred me. I proceeded cautiously, but with
a resolution that feared not death.
Aware,
however, of the deadly peril besetting me, I selected twelve men, remarkable
for wisdom in council and energy in action, on each of whom in succession the
authority should devolve if I were cut off. I initiated them into my plans, and
thus hoped that one devoted man would always be ready to advance the good work.
Whilst
providing for my death, I took measures for protecting my life against any
sudden outburst of fury. I turned my palace into a fortress, that I might not
be cut off in a moment of sudden unreasoning wrath, that myself and my
adherents might not be scoffed at as madmen, and my plans for the good of all
retarded, if not wholly frustrated. These motives I proclaimed to the people.
The
opposing obstacles were stupendous. I braved death in every shape. I passed one
mighty peril only to meet another more formidable, but fearlessly stood every
trial, and did not hesitate to act where danger was greatest. Nothing appalled
me. I never faltered from my resolves, and after years of mighty struggles, my
triumph was complete. I was blessed and adored by all the people, small and
great, and my name will live in Montalluyah through all generations.
I
gave Laws, and indicated the precautions to be taken to secure their
observance. I initiated discoveries. Inexhaustible stores of abundance were
called into existence, enriching the poor and making the rich happy in their
possessions. And the eventual result of the organization I completed was the
removal of the incentives to war, strife, avarice and other evils, the triumph
of good, and the moral and material well-being of the community.
Amongst
the many subjects to which I successfully devoted my attention were:
The
care and protection of Woman, the development of her capabilities and graces,
the preservation and increase of her beauty, Marriage and its incidents.
The
birth, growth, and education of the future Man and of the Mother of Men; the
enlarging and ennobling the moral and intellectual powers.
Preservation
of health--prevention and cure of disease--prolongation of Life, and
augmentation of the faculties of appreciation and enjoyment.
The
increase of our flocks and herds, and of other sources of supply for the food
of man. The discovery and creation of new means of sustenance and the
amelioration of the old.
The
discovery of the properties of birds, beasts, fishes, insects, reptiles, and creeping
things, and their application to the service of man.
The
invention of new instruments, the enlargement of the powers of those already
known, the development of electrical and mechanical powers, and the subjecting
the workings of nature to the uses of man.
The
care and protection in health and in sickness of the lower orders, and of those
whom nature had not qualified to take care of themselves.
Occupation
for all, each according to his capabilities and the bent of his genius, as
ascertained and developed by education.
The
government of the country; the enlargement and improvement of the cities with a
view to the health, comfort, and progressive elevation of the community.
IV.
LIGHT
FROM DARKNESS.
"Let
the mighty works of God stimulate all to industry."
My
task at first seemed never-ending; but good is ever fruitful, and each conquest
aided every subsequent effort.
I
was greatly assisted in my progress by the knowledge of powers in nature of
wondrous value, but permanently effective for good only; secrets to be
entrusted to those alone whose goodness, discipline, and self-knowledge enable
them to stand firmly against the varied attacks of temptation, and rise above
the motives by which men are ordinarily ruled, the chosen High Priests of the
Science who would never use for evil purposes the secrets imparted.
Similar
powers have been exercised for good in different ages of your planet, but the mighty
trust having become known to weak minds was sadly abused, the charm was thus
broken and the secret lost; for, when the knowledge of man exceeds certain
limits, his power, like that of good angels, can exist only while linked with
noble aspirations.
The
false prophets who used the dying embers of occult science for vile purposes
have been properly looked upon with horror as delegates of evil; for the
death-struggle of the expiring secret had wrought great mischief on the earth.
The
power which had been entrusted to me was exercised for the good of my planet,
and aided me in consummating my plans without bloodshed; those who were deaf to
words yielded to influences whose depths could not be fathomed by ordinary
vision.
In
the system I founded, every one--his natural powers disciplined to that end--is
occupied in the pursuit adapted to his genius and inclination, ascertained by
ever vigilant and scrutinising observation, and tests ofttimes repeated during
his early and later career.
These
tests are applied in a variety of forms, and by different examiners, at
different times; and there are so many checks and counterchecks, that the boy
is effectually protected against the now scarcely possible ignorance or
favouritism of "the knowledge testers," and even against himself.
Every
one having the occupation most congenial to him, all worked cheerfully in their
pursuits; and I was soon aided by a never-ending phalanx of great men. The
progress of science was marvellous, for as soon as the impeding obstacles were
removed, and we allowed her to be wooed by the lovers of her predilection,
Nature seemed to lend herself eagerly to the advances of her votaries.
The
precept exhorting all to industry stood at the head of this portion of my laws,
but the lesson was no longer needed.
I
was indeed ofttimes obliged to exhort to recreations and amusements, and to
turn many--particularly men of genius--from the too incessant pursuit of their
labours of love.
I
set an example in my own person, for I was a frequent attendant at the public
games and diversions.
One
discovery was pregnant with another; invention followed invention almost in
geometrical progression; the secrets of nature were disclosed; and power, being
wielded only by men intent on good, disease and crime were soon reduced to
almost imperceptible proportions. Wisdom and joy ruled where before folly and
misery prevailed, and towards the end of my reign the happiness of Montalluyah
was more like the joys of a celestial star than of a planet inhabited by mortal
beings.
When
the causes of affliction themselves could not be removed, they were often made
to contribute to my world's well-being.
The
myriads of insects that formerly ravaged our fields are now intercepted in
their work of destruction,[1] their properties having been discovered and
applied to purposes redundant with good.
[Footnote
1: See p. 76.]
The
hippopotami, who in earlier ages were looked upon as the incarnate enemy of
mankind, formerly overran the country, trampling down vegetation, and attacking
man and beast. These creatures are now dominated, and their breed is
encouraged, for they have become the most valuable of our wild beasts, the
hide, fat, and nearly every part of the carcase being applied to very many
purposes of the highest utility to my people.[1]
[Footnote
1: See p. 279.]
The
advent of "the fever wind," which formerly blew disease amongst the
people, now conduces to the healthfulness of those it would otherwise lay low.
The
lightning, formerly destructive, impelled--as was told in our legendary lore--by
the anger of the Fire God, is rendered innocuous, and collected for use.[2]
[Footnote
2: See Electricity, p. 54.]
The
sun's scorching force is compelled to minister to our delights, to assist in
our arts and manufactures, to supply a power which cannot otherwise be
obtained, and even to protect us from the sometimes too dangerous influence of
his own rays.
The
sunlight is powerful in our world beyond anything in your Indian or African
climates; even the shades are not black, but of a reddish hue.
The
sun, going down, leaves a red light, so that, except when at night this is
completely shut out from the houses, there is ordinarily no darkness in your
sense of the word.
At
certain times, however, Montalluyah, both by day and night, is overspread with
thick darkness. Formerly, during this visitation, no man could see his
neighbour; fear seized the people. They believed it to be the reign of bad
spirits, and so it seemed; few dared venture from their houses even to obtain
food, and numbers died from terror and exhaustion.
Light
is now made to displace darkness, and joyfulness to take the place of mourning.
My
scientific men discovered a means by which the causes that produced the
darkness are now used to remedy its inconveniences.
The
City is made gloriously radiant. Forms of trees, birds, vases of flowers and
fruit, fountains, and other designs of many tints and great beauty are
transparent with light, rendered more beautiful by combination with a peculiar
electricity emitted by the earth--an electricity which, be it observed, is the
cause of the darkness.
The
very birds by their warbling seem to greet the change, and the trees and
flowers emit a more delicious perfume.
There
is music and rejoicing everywhere in the City. Many of the electrical
amusements provided appear grander from the contrast with the darkness they are
made to displace--a contrast scarcely greater than that depicted by our
"Nature Delineators" when, in allegory, they paint the present
contrasted with past times; the later years of my reign contrasted with the
beginning.
V.
CHARACTER-DIVERS.
EDUCATION.
"Let
none but skilful workmen elaborate precious material."
Think
not that the truly great Vyora was but little honoured by being appointed to an
office connected with little children.[1]
[Footnote
1: Ante, p. 8.]
The
character-divers were entrusted by me with grave duties, on the proper
discharge of which depended the enduring success of my polity.
The
education of the young of both sexes engaged from the first my deepest study,
for I had early convinced myself that the many evils to be eradicated had their
stronghold in the mode in which education had been conducted, and soon after
the commencement of my reign I put into execution a portion of my laws for
making education a powerful lever in the regeneration of my world.
Men
of genius had been compelled by ignorance or driven by necessity to follow
occupations for which they were not fitted, and which they, indeed, often
loathed; the really valuable tendencies of these men, bent in an opposite
direction, were allowed to run to waste, or perhaps be used to the injury and
destruction of others.
I
felt that to do justice to all and effect good incalculable, evil tendencies
must be destroyed in their birth, the germs of the imperfections and crimes of
the man, detected and eradicated in the child; whilst valuable qualities and
good tendencies must be searched out, and effective means devised for their
healthful development.
The
most ordinary men, those even who would otherwise be swayed by gross passions,
would become contented workmen in the cause of good when occupied with pursuits
for which nature and education had fitted them; whilst the power and works of men
of genius would be many times increased and multiplied if their education were
adapted to strengthen and develop their talents, eradicate their faults, and
generate auxiliary excellencies.
But
how could all this be effected if the first step to so desirable an end were
wanting?
In
my visits to the schools I had been struck with the fact that little account
was taken of the characters of children,--their qualifications and natural
tendencies physical or mental: the attempt was to force the boy to the system,
not to adapt the system to the boy.
One
routine existed for all pupils, whether for the inculcation of the love of
study or for the correction of faults. The earnest and passionate nature was
treated in the same way as the cold and phlegmatic; the boy of genius or
talent, as the dullard; the one who loved, as he who disliked, or had a
tendency to dislike, study; the weakly, as the strong. They were all driven
together like a flock of sheep, with scarcely any regard to individual
capabilities, bent of genius, or physical constitution, which indeed little
effort, and that ill-directed, had been made to discover.
I
had observed, also, boys with the germs of great genius, who, for want of some
minor quality, were rejected and perhaps placed in some lower division,
humiliated and discouraged, although with care the deficient quality could have
been supplied. The want of this perhaps would make the boy a recruit to the
ranks of evil, or at least unfit him, when a man, for the real business of
life. It was the small bolt wanting to enable the machine to do its work
properly.
I
saw the sad consequences of all this mismanagement.
Many
precepts, beautiful indeed in intention, were crammed into the pupil, the
process being repeated until they often became irksome, and he was expected to
become moral and religious. I saw that precepts were of little use unless those
whom they were meant to benefit were educated, fortified, and disciplined in
the practical means of observing them.
It
was at that time painful to see children, with many good natural tendencies,
leave school with bad habits, and vices so marked and developed, that even the
exertions of the most skilful physicians, the discourses of the most learned of
our clergy, failed to effect a cure.
The
first thing necessary was to devise effective--it may be said unerring--means
to search out the characters and dispositions of children.
I
created the office of "character-divers," and selected for the
discharge of its duties eminent men of great sagacity and gentleness, skilled
in the knowledge of the mind and heart, their sole occupation being to discover
the qualities, tendencies, and incipient faults of children, and act
accordingly; to dive, as it were, into the secret imaginings of the child; to
detect the early germ of evil, and note the presence of good; to indicate
measures for eradicating the one and developing the other.
These
character--divers, called in our language "Djarke," are distinct from
the masters, called "Zicche," or fathers of knowledge, able men, who
have charge of the boys' studies.
The
qualities which enable a preceptor to impart literary and scientific knowledge
differ widely from those fitted for searching out, discriminating and
correcting faults of character, interpreting the real qualities that nature has
implanted in the youthful aspirant, and devising the measures to be taken for
correction or development.
Even
if the necessary qualities for both duties were united in one master, there
would be many objections to the duties being entrusted to the same person.
The
character-divers are as it were moral physicians, skilled in the detection and
cure of the hidden germs of mental maladies; for, as you will see hereafter, I
was not content to wait till a disease, whether of the mind or body, had developed
itself, spreading contagious poison through the veins and arteries of society,
and propagating evil without end; the germ was destroyed before it had acquired
force to injure.
In
our planet neither the faults nor the good qualities of children show themselves
in the same way; the indications vary in each child according to his
temperament and the circumstances in which he may be placed. Faults and
qualities are often of a kind seemingly opposed to what they actually
demonstrate to the character-diver--particularly in children endowed with
genius.
Fair
and even beautiful outcroppings are sometimes indications of noxious weeds
hidden below the surface. Weeds are not unfrequently born from the very
richness and exuberance of the soil, whilst many a dark and seemingly sterile
stem conceals the embryo of fruit and flowers which a genial sunshine will call
into life and beauty.
These
and other considerations demand great--almost constant--attention on the part
of the Djarke.
Another
reason for separating the two offices of fathers of knowledge and character-divers
is that the child's peculiarities are generally shown out of school-hours.
Hence, for the purpose of detecting or tracing their real cause, and suggesting
the remedy, the character-diver is often obliged to enter into terms of
intimacy with the children, particularly those of tender age, to obtain their
confidence, perhaps to be their playmate and friend, that the little ones may
be at their ease, conceal nothing, and almost look upon him as they would upon
some tame animal.
The
younger children with us require more watchfulness and skill in their treatment
than those of maturer age. The defects of the young, like incipient disease,
are less obvious, and their intelligence is less developed.
VI.
CORRECTION
OF FAULTS.
CHARACTER-DIVERS--continued.
"Let
the remedies employed be adapted to the complaint and to the constitution of
the patient, and be careful that in curing one disease you do not sow the seeds
of another more dangerous."
One
of the duties of the character-divers is to suggest, and often to carry out,
the measures for curing the child, for in our planet the mode of correcting
faults is a matter of great solicitude, lest the means adopted, instead of
checking and eradicating, tend to confirm and develop the evil tendency, or, it
may be, implant other evils more fatal than those eradicated.
The
remedies employed for curing the boy's faults vary with his temperament and
general characteristics. The same fault would be treated very differently in
the stupid and in the intelligent boy. Where there was difficulty of
impression, the labour would be like working on stone, whilst the lightest
touch and mildest measures will often suffice with the intelligent.
The
remedies vary again with the kind, degree, and cause of the fault: take for
instance the ordinary fault of laziness. This would be treated very differently
when it arose from mental defects--from a tendency to love other things, great
or grovelling, or from a sluggish or overactive digestion.
I
may here mention that a general feature in the correction of faults is the
absence of violent punishment. We wish to raise and not degrade our children,
and perhaps implant the seeds of cruelty. We do not correct even our animals by
blows. Horses, for instance, are never struck. Whips, with a small thong at the
ends, are used only to flourish and to make sounds which the horse knows, but
they are not used to strike the animal. Other modes are employed for curing
viciousness, each according to the nature of the vice. In the case of a kicking
horse, he is placed in a machine which is closed on him, the machine being so
constructed that when shut it effectually prevents the animal moving, and he is
kept there in the same position for hours. If, when taken out, he again kicks
he is placed back again immediately. The process is repeated when necessary
over and over again, until the very sight of the machine will completely cow
the animal, and he is effectually cured.
The
laws are very severe against those who would ill-treat an animal, but there is
now no need to put them in force.
We
never punish by the imposition of tasks, our aim being to inculcate the love of
study, and encourage the child to regard his work as a favour and a privilege.
On the contrary we now punish the student rather by taking away the old than by
imposing new school work; and this is so effected that the boy, though at first
delighted, soon thirsts to resume his studies.
In
many cases the pupil is not allowed even to know that he is punished,--_i.e._,
why the discipline is changed,--lest he should become attached to a fault for
which he has suffered and, as it were, paid dearly; lest, too, the excitement
of eluding detection should make it pleasurable to transgress when the
immediate pressure is removed, and he should thus become schooled in
untruthfulness and deceit.
The
character-divers generally effect the child's correction by gentleness, and
eventually bringing him to loathe the bad and love the good. Time, labour, and
attention are bestowed unsparingly, and, however small the germ, the evil
tendency is never left until, when this is possible, it is completely
eradicated. In certain cases, where the footprint of nature is too firmly
impressed, the efforts are continued until other and opposing qualities have
been developed, and the moral patient has acquired such control over himself as
to be able, in moments of temptation and impulse, to dominate the disturbing
propensity.
Even
after the fault seems to have been eradicated, the patient is for some time
subjected to various tests and temptations before he is pronounced cured. We do
not trust to superficial appearances.
Similar
precautions were taken in the cure of adult offenders against the laws, but as
soon as my plans had time to operate, offences by adults were of rare
occurrence.
When
a child gives evidence of remarkable genius, he is watched with more than
jealous care, with a view to his superior refinement, and other qualities which
we like to see in harmony. We do not like to see, as it were, a garment made
partly of rich brocade and partly of common material.
The
character-divers, too, are greatly assisted in their observations by an
establishment attached to each school called "The Amusement Gallery,"
in which after a certain time the bent of the child, his versatility,
capriciousness, constancy of purpose, and other qualities and defects are shown
in his selection and continued or interrupted pursuit of any particular
occupation or amusement.
It
is scarcely possible to overrate the importance of acting with judgment towards
children.
From
the smallest beginnings, incurable defects of mind and permanent disease of
body will gather strength, grow and obtain the mastery, till they carry off the
sufferer, or implant vices that, like evil spirits, will torture the victim
during his life's career.
Nothing
is spared in the education of the future man and mother of men. In the child is
seen the parent of other generations, one who, as he is well or ill-directed,
will strengthen or weaken the great work of human happiness, bearing with him a
blessing or a curse for the community. Therefore whatever may be the pains or
expenditure required in the cure of incipient faults, as of incipient disease,
we know that society will be repaid more than a thousand-fold in the happiness
of its members, in evil prevented and good propagated, in the numbers of men of
talent and genius whose works, teeming with great results, will be thus saved
to the State.
But
for the character-divers the services of numbers of men of extraordinary genius
would have been lost to the State, and our world's progress in science,
inventions, and happiness retarded for centuries. Nay, perhaps the then
comparative civilization would have been thrown back into barbarism, through
the destructive play of bad passions and disappointed hopes.
Numbers
who, if their early faults had grown into confirmed vices, would later have led
a life of crime, and become inhabitants of dungeons and emissaries of evil, now
grew into men of great eminence. The germ of evil propensities was destroyed,
the exuberant motive power of their nature regulated and turned to good, by
means which the character-divers thoroughly understood.
Amongst
faults, the germs of which occupied the attention of the Djarke, are the
following:
Untruthfulness,
dishonesty, discontent, pride, vanity, boasting, cunning, envy, deceit, whether
prejudice, self-deceit, or the wish to deceive others; nervousness or fear,
inducing reticence and concealment of faults, excess of modesty or the
occasional tendency of persons of genius to underrate their own powers,
inattention to studies, want of application, power to learn too easily, lack of
retentive memory, exaggeration and boldness, bad temper, sullenness,
disposition to quarrel, cowardice, cruelty, caprice as distinct from
versatility, selfishness, greediness, laziness, and its various causes, and
generally the germs of all faults and vicious propensities, which, if not cured
at an early age, would grow into tenacious vices.
From
the precautions taken in Montalluyah the schools have become real nurseries,
where the pupil is endowed with knowledge adapted to his capacity and natural
bent, strengthened and graced with valuable habits and stores of physical and
intellectual power.
VII.
CHARACTER-DIVERS--continued.
"Respect
those who would enable us to obtain the respect of others."
In
former times the education of our children, even of the most gifted, was
entrusted to preceptors who occupied less than secondary positions.
We
did not respect or love them much; nay, they were not unfrequently treated with
indignity, and yet it was expected that our children would respect and love
them and the learning they professed to teach.
All,
whether men or women, entrusted with the education of the young are now
honoured in Montalluyah, and are high in the State as persons charged to bring
about great and valuable results.
The
aid given me by the character-divers and preceptors in carrying out my plans
was incalculable. Their sagacity selected disciples apt for the duties I
required; men with vast powers impelled by good. These men propagated my
doctrines, and vigilantly watched their observance, and a new vigorous
generation soon sprang up, educated to obey my laws, and further to increase
and multiply their beneficent effects.
These
moral physicians were chosen at first from men of great sagacity, gentleness,
and powers of observation, and of polished manners.[1]
[Footnote
1: In Montalluyah children are supposed to acquire so much by imitation, that
the candidate for the office of Djarke and others must possess refined manners;
and even the quality of speaking with elegance and accuracy is considered
necessary both in them and in the Zicche. The art of speaking and writing with
correctness is imperceptibly acquired from the language of the preceptors and
other models with whom the boy comes in frequent contact. Grammar, with the
exception of a few leading rules, is not needed, and the boy's brain is saved
much dry and fruitless labour.]
Young
men of special aptitude were soon educated to the office, and it was then that
character-divers of marvellous powers sprang up, whose knowledge of the human
mind, and skill in diving into the hidden currents of character, became so
great that no incipient quality, or defect however minute, could escape their
observation.
There
is a man whom the sagacity of Vyora discovered, whose wondrous power in his art
is the admiration of Montalluyah. The good he has done and the greatness of his
work in searching out and developing hidden qualities and genius in children,
who to the unskilled eye gave no promise, is celebrated in pictures, in
sculpture, and in song, and his portrait is repeated in the highly finished and
artistic mosaic pavement of our palaces and dwellings.
We
delight to enrich our houses and public places with subjects which daily
inspire great and pleasureable thoughts.
The
subjects of the tesselated pavements include wise kings, inventors, and
discoverers, character-divers and preceptors, physicians, great electricians
and chemists; astronomers, men skilfully learned in the power of the sun; men
versed in the knowledge of the human mind; eminent painters, sculptors, and
architects; men skilled in the properties of birds, beasts, fish, and other
living things. Moral qualities are greatly estimated; and we have many
portraits of women famous for their virtues, gentleness, and superiority; even
of servants distinguished for remarkable cleanliness and other qualities. Every
house has its tesselated pavement, more or less elaborate, but always
beautifully executed, for all our artists are great, and occupy high positions.
Where
a young man evinced qualities which, when tested, showed that he would make but
a second-rate artist, the character-divers demonstrated that these youths
possessed natural tendencies better fitting them for some other pursuit.
I
have in my thoughts at this moment a favourite subject of the artistic
pavement;--a man--Zolea by name--who as a boy was inattentive to his studies,
while his talent for sketching from nature[1] was so remarkable, that even
during school hours, with his eye seemingly on his book, he would occupy
himself in sketching those around him. Every one, except the character-divers,
thought that Nature intended this boy for a great artist. These demonstrated
that as an artist he would never attain a high position; and after observing
how he occupied himself in play-hours, and subjecting him to numerous tests, so
completely cured him of his want of application and other defects, that he
became the wisest and greatest among our kings. He aided me much in the
devising and carrying out many things for the well-being of our planet.
[Footnote
1: All students, even beginners, sketch from nature, no other sketching is
allowed.]
Had
I not been the son of a king I should probably have been educated as a harpist;
for even as a child I showed great disposition for the harp, and composed both
words and music for my favourite instrument; but my father's chief councillor,
a man of great sagacity, saw in me the germ of intellectual powers far beyond
those required for the most perfect execution of the harp, and, counselled by
this sage, I was led to other studies by judicious treatment, to the doubting
surprise of my early tutors.
* *
* * *
I
will now give you some account of one of the great works begun and ended in my
reign.
This
work, called 'The Wonder' of my Planet, was by our poets often spoken of as
resembling my polity in the strength of its foundation, and in beauty,
grandeur, and stability, as a work which, like my laws, they said had saved a
world from destruction, and would endure for ever!
VIII.
THE
STAR CITY.
"The
City of delights. The beloved of the Angels."
The
power of the sun in my world is great, and the heat and light are excessive.
The great heat being, however, tempered by cooling, refreshing winds, and
gushing waters, is to our constitutions generally agreeable, except at the
period called the extreme season.
The
colours in the sky are in great variety, and of exceeding transparency and
brightness, some parts presenting masses of gorgeous reds, golden colours, rich
greens, and pinks of many shades.
The
skies present also the appearance of a most irregular and uneven surface--as
though there were high hills, some with their peaks, some with their bases,
towards the earth, and with large spaces between, so that whilst in one part
these hill-peaks and bases appear only a few miles off, other parts of the sky
seem very distant.
In
vast mountainous and rocky regions is built our great city called Montalluyah,
that is, "God's own City."
What
are called the External World Cities are built on the base sides and
summits of many peaked mountains, rocks, hills, and promontories, girded,
intersected, and undermined by the sea.
The
City is divided into 200 districts each known by a name indicative of the
situation:--
The
Upper Mountain City, Summit City, Topmost Point City, The Lower City, Down
City, Side City, Lower Under City, Sea City, Vale City, Ravine City, Side
Country, The Internal City,
and
similar designations.
Before
my reign each of these districts formed a separate city. Great or rather petty
jealousies existed between them, and much evil was the result; for they treated
each other as rivals, and often as enemies. I decreed that all the districts
should be called by one name, that the inhabitants of all should enjoy the same
system of laws and government, the same customs and polity, and form as it were
one family. I did many things to cement the union. I executed, too, numerous
great works which assisted in promoting the growth of universal brotherhood.
Many cities which formerly lay at immense distances from each other, separated
by intervening mountains of immense height, I united by perforating the rocks,
and building spacious galleries through the hearts and bases of the mountains,
and by throwing "aerial" bridges from one mountain peak to another.
Henceforth I shall speak of all these cities as "Montalluyah."
Palaces
and edifices of various forms, their gilded spires and minarets inlaid with
many coloured transparent stones which sparkle in our brilliant sun, stand on
undulating sinuous ridges, peaks, and terraces, rising one above the other in
endless and irregular succession.
The
houses are mostly curved, oval, or round. In Montalluyah straight lines are
avoided. The houses are built principally with a white stone, mingled with a
peculiar stone of a bright sky-blue colour, both stones repellent of heat.
Gardens
and verdure separate the houses one from the other. Most of the gardens are
arranged in curvilinear lines, the houses being placed at the central point of
the inner and outer curve alternately, so that each alternate house is on the
outer centre of the garden curve, and each alternate house is on the inner
centre of the adjoining curve. The undulating lines of terraces are broken by
gigantic masses of rock of various colours, red, green, golden, white, blue,
silver, brown, and variegated--rocks of carbuncle, lapis lazuli, malachite,
gold-stone, and many-coloured marbles.
These
rocks and undulations are intersected by ravines, rivers, inlets of the sea,
lakes, and cataracts, reflecting the many tints of the gorgeously coloured sky
and the rays of our vividly bright sun, filling our city as it were with
aureoles of glory.
In
many parts the sea has made itself a hidden way, and runs its course for miles
under the rocks, appearing again at great distances in one of the interior
inland cities, perhaps at the bottom of a deep ravine or open space; and the
waters are often raised and collected for use and ornament in fountains and
artificial cascades called water-lifts: whilst springs of fresh water gush out
of the rocks, affording refreshment to the sun-parched and many-coloured
grasses, flowers, and vegetation.
Great
cataracts and artificial cascades often form the background to a great building
or colossal statue. The effect of these large masses of water viewed from all
parts is extremely grand and beautiful.
Sometimes
the ravines, rivers, cataracts, and sea-arms are passed by huge bridges of the
natural rocks, perforated by the sea, or opened by man to render navigation
possible. Sometimes bridges miles in length are thrown across a great cataract
or immense chasm where the rocks have been relentlessly torn asunder by the
lightning and other electrical disturbances.
All
the large bridges are covered with houses and gardens, which at a distance seem
air-suspended cities, hanging without support over rivers, cataracts, large
cities, and aggregations of houses.
Everything
conducive to health is attended to: the supply of water to every part of the
city is unlimited, and in each house, whether of rich or poor, is a bath, for
sea and for fresh water.
We
have "violet streams," which run for miles over beds of violets white
and blue. The water of these is preserved in tanks erected at the end of the
streams, trenches being cut to assist the flow. It has a delicious flavour, and
is used for various beverages, but not for culinary purposes, since, when mixed
with certain things, it turns black and loses its fragrance.
Trees,
plants, and flowers perfume the air with their fragrance; whilst birds of
endless variety and richest plumage have their nests in the tall and wide-spreading
trees of varied-coloured foliage and fill the air with their music. In the
trees are placed artificial nests to entice the birds; these invite others,
which build their nests spontaneously. The trees are large, their branches and
rich foliage spread themselves in graceful lines to a long distance on every
side and afford pleasing shade, their gauzy leaves subduing the light and
producing the effect of soft rainbow tints. The trees also emit perfume.
The
music of the birds harmonizes with the refreshing sounds of the running waters,
cascades, and fountains; and that the effect on the mind of these beautiful
harmonies may not be disturbed, the wheels of our chariots as well as the
horses' hoofs are bound with a peculiar hide which, besides possessing great
toughness and durability, has the property of deadening sound. Thus none but
the most agreeable sounds reach the ear, whilst the senses are charmed with
aromatic odours and the eye is pleased with beauty of every kind.
Arched
galleries and passages through the hills and mountains, partly perforated by
the sea or electric fire, and enlarged by the industry of man, have a subdued
light and make an impression of another kind, the red light in these perforated
roads answering to the red shade of the outer world. These galleries and
openings in the rocks are used to shorten distances from one side of a mountain
to another.
The
whole city is full of animation. The illuminated sky, the variegated plumage of
the birds, the moving myriads of human beings, clad in rich costumes of divers
colours; horses, elephants, camels, and camelopards, richly caparisoned;
carriages gorgeously decorated, the golden domes of the houses, the
many-coloured rocks reflecting themselves in the waters and in the brilliant
skies, with their own aerial peaks and mountains brilliant and bright with our
powerful sunlight--all these combine to produce a gorgeous spectacle. Moreover,
the constantly recurring undulations and tortuousness of the ground are so
great that it is difficult to proceed for a few minutes without meeting an
entire change of scenery, as though one had reached a new city.
At
one moment are seen mountain peaks rising almost perpendicularly to the skies
in varying height, then a little turn brings the spectator on forests of
houses, with ornamental gilded domes and hives of human beings.
Overhanging
rock and mountain-forms of varied colours, the skies now scarcely seen, now
reflecting their gorgeous tints in the sparkling rivers, cascades, and
upheaving masses of water, these and much more form a picture of which words of
fire would fail to convey a sufficient idea to those accustomed to the sober,
though beautifully subdued tints of your skies.
IX.
THE
SUSPENDED MOUNTAIN.
"The
uplifted Mountain Arm, as though raised in anger, threatens you and your little
ones with destruction.....Let all hearts unite in prayer, that Heaven may
inspire your Tootmanyoso with the means of saving the world from so dire a
calamity!.."
The
ordinary elevation of the tides is immense. They advance and rise to a height
far beyond any similar phenomenon in your planet, and the waters retire in
proportion, leaving at low water many miles of seashore uncovered.
In
Montalluyah the sun's electricity is very powerful. It is the power of the sun,
and not of the moon, which principally influences the tides.
A
huge mountain mass projects from the elevated continent of Montalluyah for
miles above the sea.
The
heart and base of the mountain mass had been carried away from under the higher
mass by some great convulsion of nature, leaving the upper part of the mountain
without support, except by its adhesion to the main continent, of which it
formed part. From the point of juncture the suspended mass extends itself out
horizontally in the air over cities built on the ridges, sides, and foot of the
parent mountain-chain, and far beyond the extreme bounds of these cities, for
miles over and parallel with the sea, at a height which from the lower cities
makes the superincumbent mass rarely distinguishable from the illuminated
clouds above.
The
electric agencies in our world are very powerful; and it is supposed that at an
early age of our world's history the mountain-foot covered with cities extended
considerably beyond the land on which stand the present lower cities, and for
many miles beyond the actual point to which the sea now recedes at low water,
and that through a great electric disturbance, the upheaving seas of mighty
waters rolled on, and, rising to an immense height--some think above the summit
of the great mountain--with resistless force carried away miles of intermediate
rock-land, which had till then formed the heart of the mountain.
When
after some time the waters receded the mountain mass above the point of their
ravages was left suspended, deprived of the support of the intermediate and
nether strata, which before the upheavings of the waters had connected the
plateaus and peaks of the mountain with the land beneath.
The
suspended or aerial mountain stretches from the high lands of the continent
horizontally through the air, just as one of your largest continents stretches
into the sea. Between it and the sea below, however, is a space to be measured
by miles.
The
sea in subsiding did not recede to its old limits; for a part only of the miles
of the lower lands between the scooped-out mountain heart and the sea was
restored to the world by the retiring waters, and the heart of the mountain
having been carried away and engulfed for ever, the projecting mountain mass
was left suspended not only over the land now covered by the lower cities, but
for miles over the sea. Neither can be approached except by proceeding first
for a long distance in an opposite direction inland, until the extreme point is
reached where the sea stopped its ravages on the mountain's heart; the road
then leads by circuitous bendings to the land below.
On
the rocky ridges of the heart or indent of the mountain, and on the part of the
mountain foot restored by the sea, now stand the middle and lower cities of
Montalluyah.
The
hanging mountain mass, with its promontories and high hills, presents all
varieties of shape and outline, and is itself intersected by rocks, ravines,
cataracts, and torrents.
One
great torrent runs on for many miles, and having been swelled by tributaries
into an immense gathering of mighty waters, rushes impetuously seaward, to the
extreme point of the suspended mountain, whence from its aerial height it falls
into the sea beneath, the spray bringing refreshment to the parched atmosphere
of the lower and intervening cities, built on the ridges and peaks of the
sea-worn heart of the mountain. This torrent, called the Great Cataract, forms
a feature of great grandeur and beauty.
On
the suspended mountain itself is built a city larger than your largest
capitals, called the Upper city of Montalluyah. The Lower city, nearer the
sea-level, is distant vertically about three miles from the nearest under part
of the projecting mountain-arm above. The cities swarm with human beings,
whilst the wealth of the districts is incalculable.
Before
my time many of the under parts of the suspended mountain had broken from the
parent mountain arm, burying cities and their inhabitants under the masses of
rock.
In
the then state of science these catastrophes could scarcely have been
prevented, but at that time the inhabitants of Montalluyah rarely thought of
preventing accidents till after they had occurred!
Although
in my reign the suspended mountain did not threaten immediate danger, I saw that
unless means could be devised to support it, like catastrophes would at some
time recur, and perhaps the whole mountain arm would give way, hurling the
upper cities to destruction, and crushing the nether cities under its falling
masses. The terrible consequences that would ensue were more appalling even in
their remoteness than the most vivid imagination dared realize.
Acting
therefore on the principle governing my polity--that of preventing evils--I
determined to use the immense mechanical and electrical powers with which the
marvellous progress of science had supplied me, to construct a work strong and
durable enough to support the suspended mountain.
I
assembled from all parts the mighty men of our world, men of truth and wisdom,
fathers of science and knowledge, chiefs in all the principal departments; for
it was provided by one of my laws that before any great work was undertaken
these men should be consulted, and that, so far as was in accordance with the
chief intent, the work should be carried on in harmony with the requisitions of
the principal sciences.
After
much thought, deliberation, and study, a stupendous work was undertaken; a work
so great in the parent thought, and so wondrous in the execution, that it is
looked upon by the people as the wonder of our world.
With
your limited mechanical appliances, and backwardness of electrical science, you
will perhaps have difficulty in realizing the practicability of such a
construction.
X.
THE
MOUNTAIN SUPPORTER.
"Let
all hearts unite in gratitude to Him who sent His angels to aid us in this
work.
"He
inspired the directing mind, and gave strength to those that executed. He
created the fire that married the two substances into one indestructible
compound mass.
"Behold,
and wonder!"
A
circular tower, whose base above the foundation is more than a mile in
diameter, and whose round walls are more than a hundred feet in thickness, is
carried up from the lower land nearest to the sea-level until the head of the
tower reaches and supports the projecting mountain mass above.
The
diameter of the tower-head is one-third of the diameter of the base. The
diminution being very gradual is scarcely perceptible, and appears to be the
effect of distance. The height of the tower is the same as its circumference at
the base. Our ordinary powers of vision generally exceed yours, and the light
in our world is more intense; and yet the head of the tower can from the lower
cities seldom be distinguished from the illuminated clouds above.
The
area in the interior of the tower at the base, and for some distance above, is
divided horizontally and vertically, and the compartments are used for
storehouses, including the storing of scientific instruments, and for
experiments connected with science. The different strata and incidents of the
atmosphere at various elevations are there studied with peculiar advantage, as
there are numerous landings at different distances, and we have the means of
ascending and descending the whole distance, or of alighting on any of the
landings by means of a machine raised and lowered by electric power.
As
the work progressed, stages were constructed at different heights on which
buildings were erected, where the workmen and their families lived until the
task was completed, the materials and electricities used, as well as provisions
and necessaries, being raised to these stages by electric power. The principal
material used is the hardest and most durable substance known in our world--an
amalgamated material consisting of certain proportions of iron and marble fused
into a solid compact mass by the action of fire and electricity.
HEAVY
MATERIALS LIGHTENED BY ELECTRICITY.
The
blocks used were of immense size, so huge, that even with our electrical and
mechanical levers, many expedients were employed to raise them to their
assigned places.
Electric
science had greatly advanced in my reign, and electric powers had been
discovered by which the heaviest masses could be lightened temporarily, so that
their specific gravity, called by us the "tenacious electricity," and
its tendency to seek the sympathetic electricity of the earth was temporarily
diminished, if not entirely neutralized, without injury to the mass subjected
to the operation.
Though
the means and end are different, the principle is not unlike that by which you
often lighten the specific gravity of bodies, and even change their nature by
chemical combination, the action of fire, and other expedients, the bodies
often resuming their specific gravity and original form. The means we employ
for lightening bodies are far more rapid and effectual, and, at the same time,
the materials acted upon are less abruptly or violently changed.
Notwithstanding
all our knowledge of electric and mechanical powers, our thousands of
artificers employed, and all the industry and energy exerted in obedience to my
will, nine of our years[1]--more than thirty of yours--were spent in the
completion of this stupendous work.
[Footnote
1: Our year is not calculated like yours. The year is marked by a peculiar appearance
which the sun assumes at equidistant epochs.]
The
tower of itself is an object of great grandeur and beauty, and is richly
ornamented. The external walls of the plinth at the base of the tower are
overlaid with gold and ravine[1] metal, inlaid with large transparent stones of
varied colours. The ravine metal--a metal prized beyond gold--possesses
beautiful veins of colour, which change with the temperature--veins of watery
green, of purple, blue, and steel. When refined, it is most beautiful. The colours
are sometimes so bright that it is dazzling to look at them.
[Footnote
1: So named from being found in the great ravine, the largest ravine in
Montalluyah.]
On
the tower are scrolls and images of peculiar meaning, and of large characters
in gold and ravine metal, ornamented with transparent stones. The sun's rays
playing on these stones, and particularly on a large yellow stone like an
amethyst, illuminates the column with what may be called a supernatural light.
Alternating
with the scrolls are designs representing episodes in my life and reign. These
designs are in pure white marble in relief, and with the light of our world
stand out prominently from the iron-marble, sufficiently large to be plainly
seen at great distances from nearly all parts of the city. The proposal for
thus recording the events of my reign came from the kings and people who loved
me greatly.
As
before observed, a person can be raised from the base to the top of the column,
and through a shaft into the Upper city. The movement is rapid, and takes less
than half an hour either way, whilst the journey by our external roads, by
reason of the circuits to be taken, and the ascents and descents would, even to
descend, occupy two days on a fleet horse. The passage through the Tower, however,
is seldom used either for ascent or descent, except in cases of great
emergency, because the great difference of the atmosphere above and below
materially affects the health of the passenger.
The
machinery, too, in the descent requires much care and calculation, for the
weight of the descending body would otherwise increase to such an extent, that
accidents would occur.
The
difference of the atmosphere and the effect on the human frame between the
Upper and Lower cities is remarkable; those accustomed to live in the Lower
city have a disposition to spring from their feet when first arriving in the
Upper city. I recollect a lady--rather weakly--who seemed mad, but was rational
enough; only she could not for some time resist the impulse of springing upwards.
This
mode of communication would perhaps have been more resorted to had we not
possessed the telegraph. The electric telegraph is, in its rapidity, not unlike
that used in your world, but is different in construction and mode of working.
What is written at one station is reproduced in its exact size and form at
another. Even a portrait designed at one end of the telegraph with the electric
acid would be instantaneously reproduced at the other end, perhaps many hundred
miles distant.
At
different stages of the Tower the colour of the atmosphere sensibly changes.
This phenomenon is caused by certain minute particles which contain animalcula,
or their ova, and exist at different distances in layers, and which as they are
developed and become heavier have a tendency to fall into lower regions of the
atmosphere, till they awaken into life under the influence of the sun. Blights,
called by us Viscotae, "infectious visitors," are often thus
generated, falling from layer to layer till they settle on plants and trees.
These
ova, moved by the winds, are sometimes mixed together, but when the winds
subside the more advanced and heaviest tend to settle in the lower regions of
the air just as the heaviest particles of a mixture have a tendency to sink and
settle below.
All
this has been shown beyond doubt by a quantity of air being collected when
falling fast, and at different times and altitudes. Each portion of air being
secured in a separate glass case, the ova were then viewed through our powerful
microscopes, and subjected to various tests.
The
Mountain Supporter, which can be seen from nearly every part of the Middle and
Lower cities of Montalluyah, is an object of inconceivable grandeur and beauty,
its appearance varying according to the point whence it is seen.
This
great work often seems broken into numerous parts of varied length, by
mountains, rocks, and ravine sides, raising their heads between it and the
spectator. Often, particularly when the clouds have been high, and the sky has
been clear, I have seen from a distance parts of the huge Mountain Supporter
seemingly broken into vertical lines towards the middle and lower parts in a
way that, in conjunction with the upper parts, has produced an effect like that
of an immense flower raising its head towards the skies, supported by a long
stalk resting on many elegant but slender tendrils.
The
grandeur and beauty of the tower is, if possible, heightened by the Great
Cataract, in conjunction with which it is almost invariably seen. The falling
waters vie with the Mountain Supporter in breadth, and overtop it by the height
from which they are hurled; the one firm, stately, and magnificent in its
solidity and repose, the other vapoury and grand in its gracefulness and
movement; both inconceivably beautiful; the Cataract, a work of all-powerful
Providence, whose wise purposes no one can scan in their entirety; the
Supporter symbolizing the inspired genius of man, who, with the beneficent
purpose of saving innumerable lives from destruction, had, by the sweat of his
brow, constructed a work more stable than the solid rock,--work whose head
might be said to "reach unto Heaven."
XI.
ELECTRICITY
IN
MONTALLUYAH.
"A
spark of Heaven power."
In
the construction of the Mountain Supporter you will have perceived that we were
greatly aided by our extended knowledge of electricity.
Before
my reign, although electricity was used for some purposes, the existence of
varieties in electricity, and the manifold uses to which their wondrous powers
could be applied, were unknown.
Electricity
was not then utilised for locomotion either on land or sea, or for raising
ponderous bodies to an immense height, or in the various products of
manufacture and art, or, in short, for any of the almost innumerable purposes
where the various electricities are now employed, either separately or in
combination.
This
could not well be otherwise; for beyond a contrivance like your Leyden jar, for
collecting "air electricity," no means of collecting, still less
concentrating, electricity of any kind then existed.
The
belief once generally entertained was, that there were but two electricities,
or rather two varieties of the same electricity, one repellent and the other
attractive, answering in a measure to your terms of positive and negative.
Some, indeed, thought that several different kinds existed; but the renowned
electricians--truly great men, for they had opened the gates of
science--proclaimed that all electricities were in reality one and the same,
modified only by accidents.
They
referred to certain phenomena always resembling each other in whatever way the
electricity producing them might be generated; and they argued, with an
appearance of truth, that the electricity which produced these similar
phenomena must be one and the same: for, asked they, are not like causes
indicated by like effects? The principle was right, but, as was subsequently
shown, the application and the conclusion were wrong. The error had arisen from
the fact that electricities of every kind possess certain properties in common:
thus, air electricity enters into the composition of them all. These common
properties produce phenomena varying only in degree, but so similar to each
other that, in the absence of further knowledge, the electricians concluded
that their theory was correct, and, in consequence, many valuable discoveries
were retarded for centuries.
MANY
KINDS OF ELECTRICITY.
In
my reign, however, tangible and visible proofs established beyond doubt that
every kind of body and substance, whether animate or inanimate, contains an
electricity of its own.
Although
all electricities contain air electricity, and are similar in some other
respects, yet each differs from all others by reason of some properties
peculiar to itself, the species being different, though the genus is the same.
As in the case of the blood of animals, which is called by the common name of
blood in spite of material differences, when the species is different, so we
have a generic name for all electricities, a term signifying "A spark of
Heaven power."
Some
electricities are diffused and attenuated; some are concentrated; others are so
tenacious of the body to which they belong that they are all but steadfast.
Some are sympathetic; some antipathetic, attracting or repelling each other;
some mingle gently; others, when brought into contact, cause violent
explosions.
DRAWING
OUT AND CONCENTRATING ELECTRICITIES FOR USE.
WE
discovered the means of drawing out the various electricities from the body to
which they are appetent, and of concentrating and preserving them for use.
Man,
beasts, birds, insects, fish, reptiles, trees, plants, water, in short, all
substances organic and inorganic, possess each its own peculiar electricity. In
naming fish, I refer to each species, and not merely to those already known to
you as electrical, and which have the power of emitting strong currents of
their own peculiar electricity. A huge fish, well known on your earth, supplies
us with the most powerful of all electricities--an electricity of immense
value. Docks sufficiently large are built expressly where the sea monster is
driven, there to be subjected to the process by which he is made to yield up
the electricity contained in his huge frame.
The
different kinds of electricity collected and concentrated are stored ready for
use in a large building called "The Electric Store-house,"-- the
electricities, secured in non-conducting pouches, being placed in separate
compartments. This is the more necessary, since explosions arise when
antagonistic electricities come into contact with each other, and the
commingling of sympathetic electricities deteriorates their quality. For that
reason care is taken to keep out light. By the electricity of light most other
electricities are affected.
To
the storehouse are attached extensive grounds for experiments and for
exhibitions, which at the same time delight and instruct the people. I should
observe that beautiful as well as humorous effects are produced by certain electrical
combinations. By means of sympathetic action living bodies can be attracted and
raised without removing their inherent electricity, as you attract light
substances with the magnet or the electricity known to you.
WILD
BIRDS CAUGHT BY ELECTRICITY.
The
kind of electricity by which the body to be operated upon will be best
attracted is well understood in Montalluyah. As a simple example, I will state
that wild birds are caught by means of a sympathetic electricity. For this
purpose a long, hollow metal tube is used, at the bottom of which is a globe
containing a powerful acid. A receptacle at the top of the tube contains seeds
much liked by the birds. They hover about these seeds, and, when they are
within a certain distance, a slight pressure on a wooden spring causes a drop
of the acid in the globe to escape into the tube, and so to set in movement a
current of electricity, which, being very sympathetic to the bird, acts as an
attractor so powerful, that it cannot get away. The tube is then gently lowered,
and the birds are gradually drawn near to the earth, when a light net is thrown
over the captives, and they are shaken into a cage-net at the bottom. Calmed by
the electricity, they do not flutter or struggle when thus secured. It is very
interesting to see the birds come nearer and nearer as the rod is lowered
towards the ground.
For
electrical purposes it is necessary to catch the birds alive. Those required
for food are also caught in the same way, that they may be killed without pain,
as, indeed, are all birds and animals used for food. Birds supply an
electricity for lightening ponderous bodies; and by means of this, the immense
blocks of iron-marble used for the construction of the Mountain Supporter were
temporarily lightened, that they might be raised to their assigned places.
XII.
THE
PAIN-LULLER.
VIVISECTION.
"Cause
not pain, lest you yourselves be afflicted."
From
a small pet-bird of pink and green plumage, called in our language the Nebo, is
extracted an electricity known as the "Pain-luller."
The
preparations previously used, though very serviceable, did not fulfil all
requisites, and they so seriously suspended the vital action, that the patient
often died in consequence. By means of the "pain-luller" vivisection
and the most difficult surgical operations can be performed safely and
painlessly, without any part of the system being affected by the action of the
"pain-luller," with the exception of the nerves of sensation. We knew
that the feeling of pain in animals depends on the action of a particular set
of nerves. When this pain-lulling electricity is introduced into body, it is
attracted to the nerves of sensation, and the sense of feeling remains
suspended during several hours, whilst the other nerves and muscles--as,
indeed, all the rest of the organization--continue to perform their functions
as in their normal state.
VIVISECTION.
In
vivisection the animal's eyes are bandaged, so that he does not even know what
is going on, but is free from pain, whilst all the springs of action, with the
one exception, remain in their normal state. This would not be the case if the
animal suffered from acute pain and terror during the operation. The continued
energy of the functions is thought essential to the complete success of the
operation, whether on the human frame or in vivisection.
HOW
DISCOVERED.
The
efficacy of the "pain-luller" was discovered by an accident. A little
girl carrying a pet Nebo was knocked down, and the wheel of a chariot passed
over her legs. In a convulsive effort to save her pet, the child pressed it to
her bosom with so much force that she broke, the bird's skin. When the people
ran to her assistance, and lifted her up, they found that both her legs were
broken. To the surprise of all, she did not cry, but only asked to be taken to
her mother, and continued to press the bird to her breast. From kindness, those
near wished to take away the bird, but the girl would not loose her hold.
The
doctors were astonished; for the severity of the fractures would ordinarily
have caused acute pain, more particularly during the setting of the bones. The
child, however, though quite conscious of what was passing, did not suffer in
the least, but continued to pet her little bird.
After
many experiments, my scientific men found that this entire absence of pain was
due to the Nebo's electricity, which had escaped by the breaking of its skin. This
electricity, attracted by the nerves of sensation, had entered the child's body
when she pressed the pet convulsively to her bosom, the seat of great
sensibility. The electricity only suspended the sense of feeling, but did not
affect any other part of the child's system.
XIII.
THE
MICROSCOPE.
CONCENTRATED
LIGHT--MUSIC--EXPERIMENT ON THE LIVING MAN.
"The
same Almighty Power that governs the universe of worlds governs the minutest
particles of creation....In both is shown His infinite power."
The
properties of our Microscopes (as of other optical instruments) are wondrously
increased by the aid of an electricity called "concentrated light."
[1]
[Footnote
1: In Montalluyah light in the ordinary state is said to be a highly attenuated
electricity.]
In
our fields is found a little worm, whose body is surrounded by a beautiful and
powerful light, visible by day and by night.
While
meditating on the cause of this phenomenon, it occurred to me that the light
was probably attracted and concentrated round the little creature by its own
electricity. After many experiments, my great electricians found that this was
the case, and many valuable discoveries were the result.
A
machine, called the "Enticer," charged with electricity abstracted
from this worm, is placed in a high open spot, and light is attracted and
concentrated in a marvellous manner. When the pouch for receiving the
concentrated light is fully charged, and secured against the action of other
electricities, it is detached from the machine, and its contents are preserved
for use. The appearance of concentrated light is that of a beautiful halo.
MUSIC.
The
power of music, beyond that derived from its mere execution, is greatly
influenced by the amount of electricity infused into the sounds by the
performer; and in our planet the human voice has often been known to soothe,
and sometimes to restore, a disordered brain, by awakening the powers of some
dormant division, when the electricity accompanying the sounds is sympathetic
with the light in the brain of the listener. The human voice, other things
being equal, is more electrical than sounds from musical instruments; for in
the one case the emanations of light come direct from the living singer, whilst
in the latter instance the electricity coming from the executant passes by
contact with the instrument, and is thus transmitted through an intermediate
conductor. The beauty and effect of many of our musical instruments, and
particularly of the harp, are greatly increased by the application of
electricity.
A
skilful executant on our harp can assuage the passions of a multitude,--nay, he
can excite many of the aspirations and sensibilities ascribed in your legends
to Orpheus and other mythical personages.
It
is thought in Montalluyah,--though it was never demonstrated,--that a
modification of concentrated light forms the point of union between the
immortal soul and the perishable portions of man.
INTERNAL
CONCENTRATED LIGHT.
There
is concentrated light--the very essence of light--within ourselves,
particularly in the brain, to which the light, having travelled about the body,
is conveyed, through the instrumentality of the blood, to the nerves and other
organs.
In
speaking of the brain, we often use words belonging to vision. Until the
discovery of "concentrated light," we did not know how truthful were
these expressions, one of which in our language answers to the "mind's
eye." The eye as well as the brain contains concentrated light, and
physical impressions received through the visual organs are by this electricity
immediately conveyed to the sympathetic "light" of the brain.
By
the application of concentrated light we can even increase for a time the
intellectual powers, or, rather, we can strengthen the instrument through which
the intellectual powers are manifested.
EXPERIMENT
ON THE LIVING MAN.
The
possession of concentrated light led to the discovery of the exact mode in
which the brain acts in the living man. By experiments on transparent fish of
the zoophyte class, and on the eyes of animals, we discovered the means of
making a living body for a time transparent. The skull was rendered transparent
accordingly, and by the aid of concentrated light and of an instrument called
an "electric viewer," the currents of electricity in the brain were
made visible.
These
currents include myriads of electrical lines--literally composed of
electricity--lines the nearest approach to your definition of a mathematical
line, that which hath length without breadth.
The
filaments, as we may truly call them, are of different forms, straight, spiral,
and otherwise curved, and of varied length and colours. They are set in motion
by the impulsion of thought. When we talked to the patient on a particular
subject, one series of lines would be set in motion with indescribable
rapidity; other topics would call into play other series of straight or curved
lines. They can also be set in motion under the influence of certain
electricities.
Although
the experiments on the living man proved very valuable, they could not be
conducted with impunity, and were therefore not often repeated. The man
operated upon was insensible for some time afterwards, and felt the effects for
years. He was, however, cared for during the rest of his life, and was not
expected to work. Moreover, every kind of comfort, luxury, and amusement was
provided for him and for a certain number of relatives and friends whom he
selected as companions. Still he was not allowed to marry, that being one of
the principal conditions to which he subscribed on being chosen for the
experiment from amongst a host of candidates to whom all the serious
consequences attending the operation were made known.
XIV.
PHYSICIANS.
DISEASE
GERMS.
"Cure
all evils in their early germ, so shall ye be spared endless suffering."
Physicians
take very high rank in Montalluyah; they are furnished with palaces and
gardens; their revenue is great; they are wholly provided for by the State,
since on their knowledge and efforts depend greatly the prolongation of life,
the prevention of disease and suffering, the preservation of beauty, and of
invaluable nerve and brain power. As in the moral, so in the physical
constitution, the aim is to discover and crush evils in their germ, before they
have taken proportions dangerous to the individual and to the community.
Formerly
the chief duty of physicians was to wait patiently until disease had worked
great and even fatal mischief. Their chief occupation now is to preserve the
patient's health and prevent disease, and if, from any but accidental causes,
any one fell ill, it would be a disgrace to them. They were formerly called by
a name answering to "Disease Doctors," whilst they are now known by a
term signifying "Health Guardians."
Prior
to seasons formerly unhealthy, the physicians make visitations from house to
house. With the aid of powerful microscopes, they examine the minute particles
of the perspiration issuing through the pores. The perspiration, being the
result of efforts made by the system to throw off impurities, indicates whether
the patient is in good health, or whether there is a tendency to disease. The
state of the perspiration, though varying greatly, does not always show the
exact nature of the malady; for many diseases present the same appearances,
and, in that case, tests are applied, which do not fail to indicate to what
malady the impurities belong.
To
give an instance: There is a disease of the lungs called Scrofiuska, which
impedes respiration, and is besides often attended with cough, emaciation of
the body, and other symptoms like those that accompany consumption, for which
indeed it was formerly mistaken. It is now well known to be a different
disease, requiring different treatment. In scrofiuska the lungs swell inwardly,
but tubercles are not generated, and, unlike consumption, this disease can be
cured even when at its height. I recollect a bad case, early in my reign, where
our physicians, mistaking the complaint for confirmed consumption, declared
that the right lung was gone. A short time afterwards the real nature of the
disease was discovered, and the patient was completely restored to health.
In
both complaints, however, the perspiration, when viewed through our
microscopes, presents exactly the same appearance. In consumption, and to a
greater extent in scrofiuska, the lungs are covered with a web-like moisture,
portions of which are thrown off by the system with the perspiration.
The
ordinary appearance of perspiration in a healthy state is that of an oleaginous
liquid consistency resembling, say, a thin cream; but the water exuded by the
lungs has the appearance of dew, and is indeed called by a term signifying
"lung-dew." It does not amalgamate with the oleaginous part of the
perspiration.
Our
doctors at first thought that they could detect incipient consumption from the
appearance of this dew, whilst they had only ascertained that the germs of some
one of several diseases existed in the system. For although the presence of
lung-dew in any quantity gives intimation that all is not right, the specific
malady is not indicated with certainty. The application of certain tests to the
patient is necessary to discover the particular disease with the incipient
germs of which he is afflicted.
Disease
and contagion difficult to deal with in their advanced stages, when they have
already made their presence known by symptoms too palpable to be disregarded,
are easily mastered in their germ.
To
collect the perspiration, a little instrument, called "the scraper,"
is passed over the skin, and at each turn deposits the perspiration in an
air-tight receptacle attached to the instrument.
The
blood was found to be but a partial test of disease, for there is much in the
body which does not mingle with the blood, whilst the perspiration contains
impurities thrown off by every part of the organization, and, when examined
through our microscopes, never fails to give warning.
At
the same time the blood is the subject of deep study in Montalluyah; and every
point connected with its component parts, colour, circulation, heat, quality,
purification, is thoroughly understood.
The
physicians sometimes examine the breath. With this view, the patient breathes
on a little instrument saturated with a preparation which condenses and retains
the breath. Ample opportunity is thus afforded for its microscopic examination,
and for the discovery of the unhealthy particles with which the breath may be
impregnated.
XV.
MADNESS.
"Think
not others blind because ye will not see....The concentrated light of the soul
is not visible to the naked eye."
The
microscope also led to the discovery of the incipient causes of madness, by the
facility it afforded us for the dissection and examination of the minutest
portions of the numerous divisions of the brain.
Before
my laws came into operation the incipient symptoms of monomania were rarely
noticed, and many were driven into confirmed madness and crime by neglect or
improper treatment, whilst some of the supposed lunatics were really wiser than
their keepers or the doctors who attended them. It often happened that the
aspirations of a superior mind were mistaken for indications of the malady, and
led to the incarceration of the supposed lunatic. For instance, a poor man, who
lived in the reign of my predecessor, thought, and truly thought, that
electricity might be used as a motive power for the heaviest bodies, and supply
the place of wood used as fuel in manufactures. He also thought that
electricity, then impalpable to the senses, was the material ingredient
affecting the weight and coherence of bodies. People laughed at what they
supposed to be illusions, and there the matter might have stopped; but the poor
man persisted in his assertions that the sun contained electricity, which could
be attracted, concentrated, and applied to various purposes. He appealed to the
well-known fact, that the sun ripens the fruits of the earth, changes the
colours of substances, affects the brain, and produces many wondrous phenomena
without visible contact. His lucubrations, instead of suggesting experiment,
were received with derision, and the man himself was cruelly treated, his very
persistency in the truth convincing the world that he was a confirmed madman.
In vain he appealed to the officers charged to visit the monomaniacs, and, in
spite of all his efforts, he died in a lunatic asylum.
So
dangerous, indeed, was it formerly to announce new ideas opposed to those
already received, that we had a proverb to the effect, that he was not mad who
had "droll" thoughts, but he was so who told them to the world. The
proverb is now somewhat reversed, and he is thought wicked who, being favoured
with gleams of light, allows them to perish with him.
Accompanying
all laws, I gave to the people my reasons at length for their promulgation,
together with answers to anticipated objections; and in the exposition of the
laws relating to madness I bid them recollect that had I endeavoured to put my
thoughts into action some years earlier, I should undoubtedly have suffered
similar persecution to those under which many others had succumbed.
Monomania
is not now assumed, as formerly, from the seeming extravagance or supposed
absurdity of people's words; for it is well known in Montalluyah that thoughts
which a few years before were scoffed at as the height of absurdity are now
acknowledged facts, and they who could doubt the existence of the now familiar
phenomena would alone be thought mad! It is known, too, that people often say
strange things from confused or indistinct recollections of what has befallen
them in a prior state of existence, or from prenotion or intuition of things as
yet unknown to others; and although in the sciences we accept nothing as
conclusive that is not confirmed by experiment, the vastness or strangeness of
the thought, far from attracting ridicule, generally leads to inquiry,
experiments, and results. Many of our great discoveries have been suggested by
hints which formerly would have seemed the ravings of a disordered mind.
With
our microscopes we have been enabled to examine and dissect all the minutest
divisions of the brain, each of which responds to certain trains of thought,
and to ascertain the physical cause of madness.
This
knowledge enables us to discriminate with certainty, to detect the existence,
nature, and locality of the germ, and apply effectual remedies during the
earliest tendency to the malady. Until this discovery was made, I took
effectual means for curing the numbers in whose brains madness had already been
developed. I erected many great buildings, where each patient was separated
from the others, for in Montalluyah madness is thought to be more or less
contagious; but after I had reigned some years the deserted divisions only
served to show for what purpose they had been formerly used, and, with one
single exception, kept in case of need, these buildings are now appropriated to
other purposes.
Amongst
the discoveries that astonished the brain-doctors and mind-tamers was the
following:--It was formerly thought that the disease existed in the overworked,
portion of the brain; but this was found to be an error, inasmuch as the
disease exists in those parts of the brain which have lain dormant or have been
little used. From these the oleaginous fluids essential to their life and
activity are drawn to supply the overworked portion, which remains in full
health and power. The doctors admitted that their original belief would alone
suffice to account for their having failed to cure so many cases of madness.
The
heat of the climate, the power of the sun, the then excessive use of
stimulants, and the excitability of the people,--whose pulsation is more rapid
than yours,--all tended formerly to augment the victims of the scourge.
XVI.
THE
DEATH SOLACE.
INSECTS.
"Seek
diligently and you will find healthful good even in noxious things."
In
Montalluyah learned men are employed wholly in the study of the properties of
insects, for these contain valuable electricities.
Colonies
of insects, brought by the storms, formerly destroyed whole crops, till a
simple mode was discovered for protecting our fields and capturing the
marauders.
It
was ascertained what plant the insects liked most. This, fortunately, proved to
be a common plant--one that could be produced in great abundance. Large beds of
it are grown in a place concealed as much as possible from view. Amongst the
coveted flowers is sprinkled a strong scent, which attracts the insects, who,
finding the plant they like so much, congregate there, abandoning entirely the
other plants.
We
have gauze of a very fine and yet strong texture, with which nets are formed.
One half of the net is laid over the plant-bed when certain winds foretell the
coming of the insects, and as soon as these have covered the favourite plant,
the top of the net, moved by a spring from either side, closes over and secures
the swarm. Where not necessary to secure the insects alive, we sprinkle over
the attractive plant-beds a strong poison, which is itself extracted from
insects.
There
are at times certain impurities in places very difficult of access. Swarms of
insects, secured in immense cages, are brought as near as can be to the spot.
The cages opened, the insects instantly rush out in swarms, and soon consume
everything that has produced the noxious exhalations. All insects,--indeed all
created things,--have, in Montalluyah, some properties useful to man.
THE
DEATH SOLACE.
After
some years had passed, and my laws had time to operate, disease and crime were
reduced to the smallest proportions. Life is now prolonged to a period which,
before my reign, would have been thought fabulous, and people rarely die but of
old age.
Man's
progress having become a pleasant journey, I was encouraged to believe that the
traveller might be enabled to quit the world without the ordinary
death-struggle and convulsion, and with his expiring faculties so refreshed,
that he would give his last directions with a clear brain and a cheerful heart.
From
a little insect, my men of science extracted a material from which is prepared
a potion agreeable to the taste. This is administered to the patient as soon as
the physicians are satisfied that life is ebbing fast; and it, at the same
time, calms and rouses the dying man.
Within
five minutes after it has been taken, all signs of suffering disappear, and the
countenance acquires a calm expression, succeeded by a smile of joy rarely seen
in the most perfect health. The faculties of the dying man are brightened, and
his sensations rendered delightful. He looks calmly on death, makes his
dispositions with the serenity of robust health, converses familiarly with
those dear to him, gives them his blessing, and passes away as though he were
leaving only for a short and pleasant journey. I have seen many exhort their
children and relatives, and speak of their departure for another world with an
eloquence seldom heard on other occasions.
The
effect of the potion on a person in full health is very different; it
stimulates and excites, and is altogether prejudicial; and although it would
rather do good than harm to a weakly person, its great virtues are only shown
when taken by a man in his last moments. Where it is desirable merely to calm
or to rouse, there are other and more effectual preparations.
XVII.
INTERNAL
CITIES.
SUNSHINE
PICTURES.
"Let
the great be blessed for the joy they cause to fall on the world like
refreshing dews."
There
are two seasons in our world--the one called "moderate," the other
"extreme." In the extreme season the heat is far beyond the most
powerful heat prevailing in your tropics. Special precautions are then
necessary to preserve the health of the people. None are allowed to expose
themselves to the sun during the greater part of the day; a cooling regimen is
enjoined, and animal food is forbidden for a certain period. In both seasons
the light by day is intense; its nearest approach to colour is a warm, bright,
golden hue, not the cold, white, greyish hue of your climates; and its red
shades are sufficient to light our caverns and passages through the rocks to a
certain distance.
Those
who confer large benefits on the world are naturally entitled to enjoy a
portion of the wealth and well-being they have successfully laboured to
increase.
This
truth I constantly bore in mind, and in spacious galleries perforating the
rocks I built the Trombetski, or Internal Cities, for the especial use of those
whose superior intelligence had been occupied for the good of the world. Here,
sheltered from the scorching rays of the sun, are the palace residences of the
higher classes during the extreme season. These galleries serve also to shorten
distances between remote parts of the external world. With their streets and
passages they form of themselves cities, with scarcely less movement than in
those without.
Light
is admitted through occasional apertures--some natural, some made by man. It is
not as vivid as that of the external world, but subdued and beautifully soft,
is ample indeed for all purposes by day, like the pale red of the shade in the
external world. Even at night artificial light is not ordinarily required in
the open air, the shade of the red light of night being sufficient. Both sea
and fresh water in abundance is brought to every part of the internal cities,
which abound in waterfalls and fountains, nothing being omitted that may contribute
to beauty, health, or comfort.
Many
of the most lovely flowers and plants in the external world are those which
flourish in the red shade, and are, therefore, eminently suited to the internal
cities, where, planted in profusion, they flourish greatly, and emit aromas
like your essences, but invariably fresh, sweet, and wholesome. Their natural
beauty and odours are increased by electricity, an agent by means of which we
can give most beautiful fragrance--nay, colour, form, and variety to flowers in
general.
The
communication from the palaces in the external world is often by means of a
winding path, descending from the basement of the upper palace to the palace in
the internal world. By means of machines worked by electricity we have
facilities for excavating earth; and where rocks or hard substances intervene
we can remove large masses by the application of explosive electricities. These
paths are therefore excavated with ease.
My
palace, situate on the summit of the upper mountain city, communicates with a
magnificent summer palace, reached easily by a well lighted descent. The
daylight in the internal palaces is peculiarly beautiful, almost unearthly.
Pictures of life-like power are painted expressly for this light.
In
my summer palace is a saloon of very great proportions, with a floor of ivory
inlaid with pearls. This saloon contains more than 150 pictures, works of our
great artists, representing the principal events of my life. In these the
figures are large as life. Here are depicted extreme perils which I had
undergone; here are the present times contrasted with the past; and thus the
benefits conferred by my reign are presented in a manner which appeals at once
to the heart.
SUNSHINE
PICTURES.
Great
discoveries had been made of the enormous resources afforded by the sun. By the
aid of machines this power is greatly utilized in manufactures, sciences, and
arts. The loveliest colours of our fabrics are those imparted by the action of
the sun with the aid of instruments fitted to the purpose.
When
we desire to produce in a painting the effect of sunshine, the rays of the sun
are attracted and permanently fixed on the parts of the picture we wish to
illumine. The effect produced is as though the sun was actually shining on the
picture. The effects of sunrise or sunset-- the effects of the most brilliant,
as well as the least vivid, sunshine--can be produced at will, and are exactly
those of nature. Some of these effects are so vivid, that it would dazzle the
eye to look on the sunny parts of the picture for any length of time.
A
preparation sympathetic to the sun's rays having been rubbed over the part they
are intended to illumine, the rays are concentrated there by means of an
attracting and concentrating instrument. Another solution is then thrown rapidly
on the part illumined in order to fix the rays permanently. A brush was used at
first; but, in spite of all care, this left its deep shadow, which greatly
marred the effect. Even now much care is necessary, and the solution must be
thrown from the side with considerable address, so that the sun's rays may not
be intercepted. This solution serves also to fix the rest of the colours. The
picture is painted on a fine material like linen, of great durability.
This
art of using the sun's rays was much used on the paintings in my summer palace.
The brilliant sunlight of the outer world thrown on the principal figures
produced a greater effect in the subdued light of the internal city.
XVIII.
THE
PICTURES.
"Let
pictures speak to the eye, to the ear, to the taste, to the heart, to the head,
to the concentrated light of the soul, to the imagination as well as to the
understanding. If they do not rouse good aspirations, cast them into the
fathomless ravine, there to perish, a fitting food for the poisonous fungi that
cover its sides."
Among
the pictures to which I refer is a series representing the following
subjects:--
I.
FOUNDING OF THE SCHOOLS. II. THE OPENING OF THE AMUSEMENT GALLERY. III. MAN.
IV. WOMAN. V. MARRIED LIFE. VI. FLOCKS AND HEEDS. VII. THE ALLMANYUKA. VIII.
THE STAR INSTRUMENT. IX. NAVIGATION BEFORE AND SINCE MY REIGN. X. CONSUMPTION
OF THE VITALITY. XI. MADNESS. XII. THE EXPOSITION OF THE NEW DOCTRINES. XIII.
THE REBELS. XIV. THE MOUNTAIN SUPPORTER. XV. INVENTION OF THE LEAF INSTRUMENT.
XVI. SUN-POWER AND ITS APPLICATION TO MANUFACTURES, AND FOR HEALTH PURPOSES.
XVII. OPENING OF THE ELECTRIC THEATRE. XVIII. INVENTION OF THE INFANTS'
EXERCISING MACHINES. XIX. THE INSTALLATION OF THE CHARACTER-DIVERS AND
PRECEPTORS, IN PRESENCE OF THE TWELVE KINGS. XX. THE VALLEY OF THE ROCKS. XXI.
THE CONSUMMATION.
I.
THE FOUNDING OF THE SCHOOLS.
Education
before and since the Tootmanyoso's reign is typified.
On
one side a number of poor intelligent children are depicted wandering in
ignorance. On the other is seen the college as now established, with
indications of results. The one part of the picture is seen as if it were
enveloped in darkness, whilst on another part the sun is shining brilliantly.
II.
THE AMUSEMENT GALLERY.
The
opening of the first Amusement Gallery is here depicted with the Tootmanyoso
attending.
This
is an interesting picture. It exhibits the gallery, with the different
playthings and amusements, toys, musical instruments, live birds, small
animals, flowers, and other objects. Amid these are shown the interest and
delight of the little ones, happy groups of merry faces, the joy and gratitude
of the mothers, the Tootmanyoso's satisfaction in contemplating his work, and
the intent observation of the "Character-Divers," and "Overlookers,"
with other varied and interesting features.[1]
[Footnote
1: See p. 202.]
III.
MAN.
Man
is shown as he was before, and as he had become after I as Tootmanyoso had
reigned about one hundred of your years. Man's life had been lengthened from
your average age to one which before the employment of the means enjoined and
carried out in my reign would have been considered impossible.
The
different stages of man's life during both eras are here contrasted in every
gradation. Thus we have the child as he was, the child as he is, commencing his
education, and his entry into manhood; the coxcomb and dissipated man of former
times, and the man of the present era, following the road leading to his own
happiness and the good of others; middle age--the man struggling to draw the
load up the hill with painful efforts, the other man engaged in congenial
occupation; lastly, the disappointed and the happy old age.
IV.
WOMAN.
In
like manner we have a series of pictures showing woman's former state; her
present education, in the representation of which episodes are given of her
progress in her own sphere to the level and companionship of man. Reference is
made to the means of increasing her beauty, and employing her charms for her
own and man's happiness;[1] the gentleness of her nature in softening man's
lot, whilst she is supported and defended by him; woman as a mother, her
devotion to her children, and her joy and gratitude in contemplating the
development of their strength and beauty through the means enjoined and
practised in my reign.
[Footnote
1: See p. 94.]
One
picture, let me add, represents the mode of choosing a husband,[2] and another
represents ceremonies used in the preparations for marriage.[3]
[Footnote
2: See p. 104.]
[Footnote
3: See p. 120.]
V.
MARRIED LIFE.
In
the picture relating to this subject we first show marriage as it was. The wife
and husband are rarely by each other's side; when they meet they are in common
attire, and receive each other with frowns; the wife, in grand costume, smiles
on strangers, and so on with other episodes of former married life.
With
this state of things is then contrasted, in every detail, the happiness of the
married state as it now exists.
VI.
FLOCKS AND HERDS.
These
are pictures showing the spare and lean cattle of earlier times, the former
paucity of our flocks and herds, and the present innumerable supplies,--the
result of good treatment, and of people's obedience to a law of mine which
forbade them to slaughter the female, so that our resources for multiplying our
stocks should not be diminished. The present humane method of treating animals,
and the dispatching of the animal without pain, are admirably depicted.[1]
[Footnote
1: See p. 213.]
VII.
THE ALLMANYUKA.
The
different stages of my progress in creating the Allmanyuka, or new food,
substituted by me for a strong, stimulating, and injurious condiment previously
in general use, are represented in another series of paintings, showing the
incipient thought and its perfection, the fruit in its various phases, my
anxiety while watching the growth of the fruit, my joy when success had crowned
my efforts, and the gratitude of the people.[2]
[Footnote
2: See p. 220.]
VIII.
THE STAR INSTRUMENT.
The
Tootmanyoso is seen looking through the "Star Instrument," while
worlds are opening in the distance. This "star instrument," or
"world viewer," is a gigantic telescope of immense power, aided by
electricity, constructed for me at my suggestion.[1] The power of our
telescopes is wondrously increased by electric and chemical combinations, but
this one excelled all others in magnitude and power.
[Footnote
1: See p. 299.]
IX.
NAVIGATION.
Navigation
before and since my reign is here depicted. The frail and sluggish ships of
former times are contrasted with the swift and powerful ships constructed in my
reign.[2]
[Footnote
2: See p. 268.]
X.
CONSUMPTION OF THE VITALITY.
An
episode connected with the discovery of the incipient cause of this malady is
here represented.[3]
[Footnote
3: See p. 235.]
XI.
MADNESS.
In a
series of pictures are portrayed various incidents illustrating the injuries
formerly inflicted from ignorance of the causes of the malady, the really mad
having often been regarded as sane, whilst many of the sane were treated as
mad. Every phase of the malady as it formerly existed is depicted, as also the
discoveries and incidents attending its detection and cure in its incipiency.
XII.
EXPOSITION OF THE NEW DOCTRINES.
While
representing the Tootmanyoso expounding some of his leading doctrines, the
artist has given to many of the countenances a fearful expression of hatred and
incredulity, while the Tootmanyoso's calm and settled purpose is grandly
expressed in the dignity, eloquence, and unswerving faith depicted in his
aspect and general bearing.
In
this picture, too, are seen figures of children clothed in rich habits, who had
been brought up in idleness, and taught to respect little else than money; some
deriding, some in the act of throwing missiles at the principal figure, whom
others are revering.
The
poor people's joy when relieved by the Tootmanyoso from misery and oppression,
and told that the gates of honour were open to themselves and their sons and
daughters, is plainly shown. The beaming intelligence of beautiful children
with lofty aspirations, expressing innate love of good and desire of knowledge,
hitherto held back by want, is also represented. All this is more beautifully
expressed by the painter than words can convey.
XIII.
THE REBELS.
An
episode in the Tootmanyoso's life when, alone and unarmed in his study, he was
surrounded by a band of armed men, who had bound themselves by oath to murder
him unless he complied with their rebellious demands, is here recorded in a
picture, in which is portrayed the noble figure of the Tootmanyoso, unarmed and
bareheaded, at the mercy of these furious armed men, who have the expression of
wild beasts in their rage. The painter nevertheless has succeeded in giving to
the faces of the rebels a cowering expression, as if they were inwardly awed by
the undaunted calmness and aspect of the man they had come to destroy.
XIV.
THE MOUNTAIN SUPPORTER.
Besides
the most remarkable views of this wondrous work, the different interesting
incidents attending its construction are recorded. Here, also, is portrayed the
unsupported Mountain Arm, threatening many cities with destruction, as it appeared
before the construction of the Supporter.
XV.
INVENTION OF THE LEAF INSTRUMENT.
The
discovery of the properties of leaves, and the invention of the "Leaf
Instrument," by the aid of which fallen leaves are utilised as a valuable
means of enriching the Earth. This was a great boon to my world, greatly
increasing the fertility of the land and the excellence of the crops.
XVI.
SUN-POWER.
The
discovery of Sun-power; its application to manufactures and the arts; to
various medicinal purposes, and to invigorating the constitution and brain of
man.
XVII.
THE ELECTRIC THEATRE.
The
opening of the first Electric Theatre, and the exhibition of the wondrous feats
accomplished by Electricity.
XVIII.
INFANTS' EXERCISING MACHINES.
The
Tootmanyoso suggesting to one of his scientific men, Drahna by name, the
machines, the use of which prevented many of the accidents and diseases
incident to infancy. There are many other pictures illustrating the discoveries
by which health and beauty are preserved, and man's life is prolonged.[1]
[Footnote
1: See p. 187.]
XIX.
INSTALLATION OF CHARACTER-DIVERS.
The
Installation of Character-Divers and Preceptors is a ceremony of a very solemn
character, and takes place in public, the Twelve Kings presiding. The candidate
engages solemnly to fulfil the duties strictly and impartially.
XX.
THE VALLEY OF THE ROCKS.
The
Tootmanyoso addressing the people in the Valley of the Rocks; an extremely
picturesque locality, studded with rocks, which, by his orders were sculptured
into groups of gigantic statuary, calculated to impress the people's minds with
grandeur and beauty.
XXI.
THE CONSUMMATION.
The
Tootmanyoso, on the completion of his work, is seen offering up thanks to
Heaven.
The
principal figure stands out from the picture in a marvellous way. A glory of
light shines on the monarch's brow, and his eyes are illumined with heavenly
fire and inspiration. In the background are the people, surrounded by plenty,
and guarded by myriads of angels. Our painters have the art of giving to their
delineations of angels an incorporeal vapoury appearance, like that of forms
sometimes seen in sleep. The Tootmanyoso is in the act of accompanying his hymn
of praise with the grand music of the harp. This instrument with us is of
gigantic proportions, and, touched by a skilful player, produces lovely
effects. It is not supported by the executant, but revolves easily on a ball
and socket, to which, having been placed at the exact inclination required, it
is fixed by a small bolt before he intones his hymns.[1]
[Footnote
1: See p. 243.]
It
was delightful for me to go down occasionally to the great room, and to
meditate on these pictures, and the subjects that had inspired the painters.
The light and tone of the place, and the general impression made upon me,
seemed to savour more of heaven than of earth.
XIX.
WOMAN.
CHOOSING
BY HAND--CHOOSING BY FOOT--GIRLS' DOBMITORIES--EARLY RISING--PRAYERS.
"Let
woman be as soft as down, as sharp as a lancet, as sparkling as the diamond,
and as pure as Stainer's fount." [1]
[Footnote
1: See p. 149.]
Woman
is the object of much solicitude and consideration, and enjoys many privileges.
The tendency of her education is to qualify her for the position which nature
intended her to hold as the companion and helpmate of man. However she is
instructed, though not to so great in degree, in many branches of art and
science, cultivated by the stronger sex, the design being to enable her to
appreciate the efforts of man and to encourage and comfort him in his progress,
but not to take his place. With us women are happy and contented, and words of
complaint rarely fall from their lips.
Great
precaution, however, is taken lest they should overwork themselves in the
severer studies, or even in the lighter occupations, the tendrils of their nerves
being so delicate, that, if once injured, they would seldom be restored to
their normal condition.
There
is this marked difference in the education of the two sexes. Boys are educated
in manly and athletic sports, in all that can give them strength and physical
development, and call out their masculine qualities, while the occupations and
exercises allotted to girls tend to confirm and develope their natural
delicacy, gentleness, and sweetness. The result, is, that whilst men are large
of frame and endowed with great force and strength, the women in Montalluyah
scarcely ever exceed the middle size. They are beautiful, and thoroughly
feminine in form and feature, while in disposition they are sprightly,
ingenuous, and truthful. Their carriage and movement are marked by elegance and
grace, their voice is of melodious softness, and they are altogether
distinguished by a peculiar charm and fascination.
Most
of our women are brunettes, with rich black silky hair and eyes-- large and
beautiful as those of the gazelle; but the fair with blue eyes are considered
the more beautiful--probably on account of their rarity.
The
beauty of the woman, like the muscular development of the man, is greatly aided
by the care now taken of children from their birth. Women were formerly left to
themselves, and many, either from ignorance or want of thought, neglected to do
justice to their proper qualities and charms, whilst they became enamoured of
ostentation and indulged in a thoughtless extravagance which served to kindle the
envy of their neighbours, and to bring ruin to their husbands. Whilst seeking
extraneous aids to beauty, they neglected the simplest precautions for its
preservation, though, when their charms had faded, they eagerly sought means to
repair what were incorrectly called the ravages of time, but were only the
unavoidable consequences of their own neglect. The heavenly light of their eyes
had become dim; their complexions, originally of a warm purity, had become of a
yellow tinge; their skin, soft to the touch and beautiful to the eye, had
become shrivelled and hard; their dark and beautiful hair had become grey or
fallen off, deprived of the nourishment which had been prodigally wasted, and
the undulating and elegant form had often sunk into a misshapen mass.
We
have now a belief that the harmonious development of the body is not only
physically and aesthetically desirable, but assists in the healthful
development of the mind, to which, for a time, that body belongs; beauty being
regarded as "a precious gift from Heaven which it behoves every woman to
preserve and improve." The exceptions to beauty are now rare, and women
are scarcely less lovely in age than they were in youth. In many cases time has
actually enhanced their attractions, improved, through the additional charm
impressed on the countenance, by the sweetness and gracefulness of their
nature.
Cosmetics
for the reparation of beauty are not needed, but women of all ranks are
enjoined to use various precautions for its preservation. We have cosmetics very
efficacious for protecting the face from the burning sun, for keeping cool the
natural moisture, for preserving the complexion, and for preventing wrinkles.
In our climate the heat distends the skin, and by inducing excessive
perspiration, reduces the fat required to support it. But for our cosmetics,
wrinkles would be formed at an early age. As it is, the skin and complexion, as
well as the form and features, are now preserved to the last period of life.
The
hands and feet, and indeed all the details of beauty, are much cared for. The
toes of the feet are exercised in a variety of ways, and are almost as elastic
and pliable as the fingers, being, as well as the ankles ornamented with
jewels. Soles, secured with sandals protect the under part of the foot. On many
great occasions the sandals are dispensed with, the sole being secured by a
preparation rendered adhesive by the warmth of the foot. This preparation is
easily removed by the application of a sponge and water.
CHOOSING
BY HANDS.
A
lady's hands and feet form so great a feature in the estimation of her beauty,
that they are made a distinctive test for deciding preferences on certain
occasions.
Thus,
partners for the dance are sometimes chosen in a way that excites a great deal
of mirth. The custom is called "choosing by hands."
A
large round screen, made expressly for the purpose, stands at one end of a
ball-room; behind this a certain number of ladies--generally twelve at a
time--place themselves, accompanied by the master of the ceremonies. The opening
in the doorway is then closed. The screen, though not closed at the top, is
sufficiently high to completely mask the ladies, and there are in it twelve or
more small apertures, lined or faced with a soft crimson or other warm-coloured
velvet, sufficiently large to admit of a hand being passed through, so that it
may be seen and criticised on the exposed side of the screen. Through one of
these openings each of the ladies passes her right hand, and the gentlemen
choose the hand they prefer, each by touching a spring nearest the hand
selected, and at the same time announcing his name. The chosen one is
immediately led out from behind the screen and presented by the master of
ceremonies to the gentleman, in the midst of the applause or merriment of the
company before the screen, and of the rest of the ladies behind it. Ladies are
very particular about their hands and nails, and, as may easily be conceived,
give them a little extra attention before going to a party.
CHOOSING
BY FOOT.
There
is another peculiar mode of choosing partners--"by foot"--but this is
conducted in a different manner, and is made to depend on the superior beauty
of the foot, as decided by an arbiter, who is chosen by the company, and who
is, of course, a man famous for his taste and knowledge of the beautiful.
While
the arbiter pursues his duties, the ladies are concealed behind a screen, which
is, however, open sufficiently at the bottom to disclose the foot and ankle.
She to whom the palm is awarded has the first choice of a partner, and the
others follow in succession in the order in which they have been ranked. This
diversion, though exciting great interest, is not so happy as "the choice
by hand." The ladies whose feet are placed in a lower rank often think
themselves aggrieved, and are slightly jealous of their rivals, for in spite of
the efficacy of my laws, I could not--whilst giving just triumphs to superior
beauty-- altogether prevent a feeling of disappointment in ladies who saw the
palm given to others by one recognised as an honest and able judge,--a man
whose taste was known to be irreproachable.
When
the hand and foot of a young lady are inclined to coarseness, while at the same
time her talents and goodness entitle her to a superior position, the fingers
or toes, and afterwards the hand and foot themselves, are bound up, for a
certain number of hours each day. We do not like "contradictions,"
or, as I have before observed, we object to a garment partly of rich brocade,
partly of common stuff.
GIRLS'
DORMITORIES.
At
the head of all the means for preserving beauty are cleanliness, frequent
ablutions, and a habit of early rising. In these girls of all ranks are well
schooled, and to show you that in their education we do not neglect what are
erroneously called trifles, I will tell you of one of the modes of treatment
commonly employed in connexion with such matters.
In
the colleges each girl has a separate sleeping-room, as we have a great
objection to young girls sleeping together in one room, and inhaling each
other's peculiar gas thrown off in the form of breath during their slumbers.
Besides, when that practice prevailed, as it did formerly, the girls were in
the habit of talking to each other upon subjects which often suggested
inconvenient thoughts, even to the best disposed, and confirmed others in
tendencies which eventually grew into confirmed vices.
On
the pupil's retiring to rest, the door of her sleeping-room is fastened from
the outside by one of the matrons. The girl has no means of opening it herself,
but by touching a little spring at the head of her couch she can at any moment
communicate with the matron night-watchers. These matron night-watchers--two
for a certain number of girls--are on the alert during the night, remaining in
a place called the "watch," where are suspended the electric bells,
underneath each of which is the name of the girl occupying the room to which it
corresponds.
Light
is supplied to every dormitory by means of a lamp inserted in the wall, and
opening from the outside. Half an hour after the door has been closed the
matron extinguishes the light, without entering the room. The external red
light of night is also excluded; for, as with you, darkness is thought much
more conducive to refreshing sleep.
In
consequence of the warmth of our climate, girls, being naturally rather
luxurious, are not inclined to rise early. They are, however, all required to
rise at the same hour, and this is the mode adopted for rousing them. At the
end of each room, opposite to the sleeping-couch, is a kind of gong made of
metal and formed like a pair of cymbals, united at the base by a hinge, and
kept together by a bolt at the top.
At
the hour of rising these cymbals are set in motion by the matron in the watch
room, who touches a spring by which the bolt fastening the cymbals together is
removed. Thereupon the cymbals immediately clash together, and produce loud
discordant sounds. The girl, not liking the discordant noise, loses no time in
stopping it, which is beyond her power unless she leaves her bed and fixes the
bolt that keeps the two cymbals together.
This
done, she goes into an adjoining room, in which are a bath and other
preparations for her ablutions. The door communicating with the sleeping-room
closes of itself, whereupon the matron enters the apartment, pulls off the
bed-clothes, and opens a large skylight at the top, to admit the fresh air.
The
ablutions of all the girls ended, they descend to their repast, after which
they say a very short and simple prayer. In this thanks for their refreshing
sleep and for the food they have partaken are united into one petition that the
labours of the day may be blest by the Supreme.
The
practice which formerly existed of saying long prayers before the girls partook
of their first repast is abolished. Many young people have keen appetites after
a night's rest, and when the old custom prevailed their thoughts would be
wandering in a direction very different to that ostensibly taken by their
prayers.
Although
saying set prayers before the early meal is now not required of the young girl,
gratitude to the Dispenser of all good is successfully inculcated. On the walls
of the repast room are inscribed in large characters appropriate precepts
adapted to the young intellect--such as "Think of God before you
eat." In the meaning of these the young are instructed at an early age,
and by various devices are imperceptibly led, through the medium of the eye, the
ear, and the understanding to acquire the habit of directing their thoughts in
conformity with the spirit of the precepts.
A
careful discipline prevails, as I have intimated, in all matters relating to
the education of girls of every rank, but, as soon as they attain one amongst
the higher positions and marry, they are allowed, nay, encouraged, to indulge
in many luxurious habits, to dress beautifully, and to wear magnificent jewels,
but only according to their means.
As
an instance of luxury in simple things, I will mention a peculiar soft
reclining cushion, or settee, particularly adapted to exhibit the lady and her
costume to the greatest advantage. As the lady sits down, however gently, it
yields to the pressure, leaving her surrounded by the portion not pressed,
which thus forms a background, and, as it were, a frame to the living picture.
When she rises, the elastic cushion resumes its pristine form. The least
movement is sufficient to cause the seat to rise or fall, and I have often seen
ladies amuse themselves with this gentle exercise.
To
these settees a pad is attached. On a spring being touched this opens, and
forms a fan which by its own movement fans the lady, and at the same time emits
a refreshing perfume, continuing to act until the lady closes it by touching a
spring.
These
settees are covered with silk of various colours, adapted to the ladies and
their costume; a peculiar crimson ornamented with gold is the favourite colour.
They are allowed to be used by the married ladies alone, and are much liked by
them, the more so perhaps that in the colleges girls of all ranks are not
allowed to use any seats but those without backs.
XX.
CHOICE
OF A HUSBAND.
"Women
are the mothers of the nation. The happiness of our life depends on theirs.
They have much to bear. If we neglect them we neglect ourselves."
Having
taken care by means of education to eradicate all incipient faults in woman, to
confirm her health, to increase her powers of attraction, and fit her for the
station which her talents and virtues entitle her to fill, we take the best
means to ensure that the maiden shall at the proper age marry the man most
pleasing to her, and most likely to secure the happiness of both.
In
every district a council of ladies, who have passed through certain ordeals,
and a council of elders, regulate all matters relating to marriage. Over each
of these presides a man of a certain age, and of spotless character, whose
qualities, actions, and mode of life have been observed and recorded from early
youth.
Let
me more particularly describe how the lady makes choice of a husband.
During
thirty-one evenings in succession the girl intended for the marriage state is
placed in an assemblage composed of eighty-five young men, one of whom she is
expected to choose, but however quickly her mind may be made up she is not
allowed to announce her decision till the thirty-first evening has arrived.
The
eighty-five young men are selected by the councils from those only who have
declared their intention of marrying. Any man of the same rank as the lady, who
is desirous to be one of the eighty-five, is generally nominated at once, and
if the girl has any especial liking for one particular person, she is allowed
to communicate the fact privately to one of the ladies of the council.
In cases,
however, where both the councils are of opinion that there is any serious
objection to the eligibility of the young man, they have the right to withhold
the summons. This right they rarely exercise, and never until after
communicating with the lady where she has named the gentleman. Every
contingency is well considered; besides, the regulations which govern every
step connected with these meetings, and the sacred feeling with which the
councils regard the delicate trust confided to them, prevent any inconvenience
which might otherwise arise from their proceedings.
At
these meetings the girl wears a peculiar headdress with a star in front, to
distinguish her from other ladies who are allowed to be present, but who
however are expected not to pay court to the gentlemen. It would have been
unreasonable to require the exercise of so much self denial under the old
system, but an acquisition of the power of self denial forms part of the
training prescribed by my system of education, and is now ordinarily practised
when needed. This privilege of being present is highly prized and eagerly
sought by ladies, if only for one of the thirty-one chosen evenings.
The
gentlemen who wish to have their pretensions favourably viewed, pay court to
the young maiden of the star, and any gentleman who it is thought may prove
agreeable can be called by the lady of the council, one of whom is always
seated near the girl.
On
occasions when some of the gentlemen present would rather not be amongst the
aspirants, it is amusing to see them retire behind the others, hoping to escape
without offence against the rules of good breeding. Should one of these be
called by the lady superior, he will probably give himself awkward airs, and
endeavour to be as little engaging as possible. The maiden generally looks
modest and blushing, and needs the assistance of the lady superior, who is not
unfrequently obliged to represent her in conversation.
Before
a week has elapsed the maiden of the star has generally intimated by look, who
is likely to be the selected one. Sometimes, however, she is fickle, and when
one, encouraged by her expressive glance, has paid her court, she will
encourage another and another, and another,--for on these occasions she has
full liberty of action.
It
is amusing to see the efforts of pretenders, and the expression put on, whilst
overwhelming the lady with amiabilities when her thoughts and perhaps her
glances lie in another direction. She in turn may be obliged to use all her
power to attract the one she desires to select. If she be a coquette, each one
of many will think that he himself is the fortunate swain on whom her choice
will fall. The doubts existing in these instances cause great excitement and
amusement, and between the meetings pearls against rubies, diamonds against
diamonds, and other precious stones are staked on the event.
Great
is the agitation on the thirty-first evening, when the maiden is expected to
declare on whom her choice has fallen. She proclaims it by presenting the
chosen one with an appropriate flower, and thus is spared the pain of a verbal
declaration. A band of music then announces by a particular and well-known
strain that the choice is made, and a march is played, to the measure of which
the chosen one leads his intended to a throne on a slightly raised dais.
Each
of the gentlemen then approaches, successively presenting to the maiden a
flower,[1] which he lays on the table in front of the dais, wishing her at the
same time happiness and joy.
[Footnote
1: See p. 126.]
The
lady will perhaps kiss the flower presented when anxious to show regard for the
giver, whom, however, she has not been able to choose. This ceremony of
presenting flowers having been concluded, the future bride and bridegroom lead
the way to the banqueting-room.
On
the evening following, a meeting of three hours' duration takes place between
the chosen one and the maiden, who is accompanied by the lady superior of the
marriage council. The two converse, and if after mutual explanation anything
incongruous is found, either party is at liberty to object, and the marriage
does not take place; but if the three hours pass without objection no further
question can be raised. The two are then looked upon as betrothed, and after a
certain interval the marriage takes place.
It
sometimes happens that at the meetings of the eighty-five the maiden,
distracted between contending aspirants, is unable to give the preference to
any. In that case she is put back for another year.
At
the end of the year another assembly of young men is called; the number invited
is limited, however, to forty-five, and the evenings are reduced to twelve.
Should the lady again fail to select--a very improbable occurrence--another and
final assembly would be called for the following year, the number of gentlemen
being reduced to twenty-one, and the evenings to seven, and if the lady should
still remain undecided she must be content to enjoy single blessedness during
the rest of her life. For my own part, I do not recollect more than one case
where the selection was postponed beyond the second year.
XXL.
THE
DRESS OF SHAME.
SUN-COLOURED
SILKS--THE ART OF PLEASING.
"Let
not the ranks of the good be defiled by the presence of him who has betrayed
his trust."
I
never knew an instance of the trust confided to the Marriage Councils being in
any way abused. None are selected for the office, who have not, after years of
probation, shown themselves in every way worthy of the sacred trust.
A
severe punishment would attend any deviation from the strict path of honour;
the offender, condemned to wear "the dress of shame," would probably
be degraded from his rank. After a time had passed, sufficient to exhibit his
punishment as a warning to others, he would, perhaps, be banished to a distant
country. It should be understood that every other part of our world is less
agreeable than Montalluyah.
The
dress of shame to which I have just referred, is a common robe formed of one
piece, and of sombre colour, on which dress are placed marks indicating the
nature of the offence and the name of the offender. Similar marks are likewise
placed over his house, and are well understood by the people.
Independently
of the deep degradation implied by this costume, the entire privation of his
ordinary dress would alone be a punishment to the offender, for the people are
very fond of dressing well. I encouraged the love of dress particularly in
woman, for I thought that when properly regulated it was good, and heightened
the beauty of the picture. With us the style of dress and the taste of its
arrangement are thought indications of the mind within, but none are allowed to
dress or wear jewels beyond their station.
After
marriage ladies, according to their rank, are allowed to wear very rich
costumes. The textures are beautiful and the colours very brilliant.
SUN
SILK.
The
sun gives lustre to fabrics and imparts colours which can be supplied by no
other means. In your planet such brilliancy is never seen except in the sun
itself. We have, for instance, a silk of a very remarkable colour, which is
highly prized by the ladies. Of this you may form a remote notion if you
imagine a bright silver green radiant with all the vividness and brilliancy you
sometimes see in the sunsets of your southern climes.
Some
of our silks in the natural state are of a chalky white. This silver green is
obtained by exposing the silk, when woven into the piece, to the rays of the
sun during the half-hour after noon; no other time of the day will answer as
well. If the silk were kept beyond the half-hour, the tint given would be
unequal. The material is exposed to the influence of the sun in a machine,
which has two different actions; by one, that lasts for a quarter of an hour,
the silk is unrolled, and by the other, which is of exactly the same duration,
it is rolled back, the two operations being so regulated as to finish in the
half-hour two "pangartas," equal to about twenty of your yards, the
quantity required for a lady's dress. The colour penetrates through the silk,
but the side exposed to the sun is the more brilliant.
Our
Ladies also wear a silk most beautiful in texture and colour, called "Sun
Silk." To obtain this silk, the sun is made to bear on silk-worms at
particular hours of the day, and the result is, that the silk of the cocoon is
of a colour resembling that of a bright sun.
There
are numerous other beautiful colours prepared in different ways under the
influence of the sun, and, by the action of the same luminary, fabrics for
ladies' dresses are endowed with the power of repelling heat.
THE
ART OF PLEASING.
Women
are instructed in the art of pleasing, and the handsomest and most gifted exert
themselves to this end. They are required to attend to their personal
appearance abroad and at home. The married especially are enjoined to attend to
this as much in the presence of their husbands as before strangers. A different
custom prevailed in former times, when women after they had been some time
married, thinking that their husbands' affection was secured, gave themselves
no further care to please him, though still taking pains to appear handsome and
fascinating to others. It was for visitors and strangers that the most comely
apparel and the most engaging manners were put on; the consequence was, that
the husband often preferred the society of those who in appearance at least
seemed to care more for him than did his own wife. This was the cause of much
of the immorality which formerly existed in our world.
The
example, too, on children, was most injurious; it schooled them in deceit and
disingenuousness. My laws declare that those, whether man or woman, are
dishonest, who wear a behaviour to each other after marriage different to what
they did before, for they have gained the affections of their victim by
deceit--pretending one thing and doing another.
XXII.
COSTUMES.
"The
harmonious beauty of dress gives often indication of the mind of the
wearer."
While
speaking of materials for dress, I will venture to interrupt "the
preparations for the marriage" by giving a short description, of some of
our costumes.
As
certain of our manners and customs, besides having a character of their own,
may be said to partake both of your Eastern and Western usages, so do our
dresses partake both of your oriental and classical costumes.
LADY'S
COSTUME.
The
costume of the lady is loose and flowing. A jacket or bodice of purple tissue
covers the right arm, and one side of the body to the waist, leaving the left
arm, shoulder and part of the bosom exposed.
A
small waistcoat, made of a crimson tissue, is worn underneath the bodice.
The
tunic is of white tissue, beautifully embroidered with a gold thread. The short
skirts show trousers of golden tissue, full, and not unlike those of your
Turks. They are confined at the ankle by anklets, made of plain gold for the
middle classes, whilst those worn by the upper classes are of ravine metal,
ornamented with precious stones.
There
are fringe trimmings to the tunic made of precious metals of every variety of
colour, selected for their lightness and beauty, and enriched at their
extremities with precious stones. The colours of the costume vary with the
taste of the wearer, but are selected to harmonise one with another, and all
with our brilliant light.
The
feet are protected by a sole secured either by sandals or by means of an
adhesive material.
Women
are not allowed to wear stays, or in any way to confine the waist. Indeed such
encumbrances would serve no good purpose, inasmuch as their forms are actually
beautiful; their spines, in consequence of their physical education, are
strong, and every part of the person, which might otherwise possibly require
support, is in its proper place.
HEAD-ORNAMENTS.
In
the hair is sometimes worn an ornament forming two wings, each consisting of a
single diamond, which moves on small fine hinges, and is so arranged that the
least breath of air will set it in motion. In the centre uniting the two wings,
is a small crimson stone surmounted by a large round stone of purple-blue, from
which sprouts out a very fine dagger of a greenish-gold colour. The rest of the
head-dress is made of fine metal, chosen for its lightness, of the same tints.
These metals are of equal, perhaps greater value, than gold, but are chosen for
their qualities. The necklace and anklets correspond in character to the
headdress, with the addition to the former of one large pearl, which hangs to
the wings and rests on the lady's bosom. The bracelets are made in your Greek
style--bands of gold set with large pearls. The soles to protect the feet are
gilded with ravine metal. The sandals, which are of purple enamel of a peculiar
kind, are often ornamented with jewels. The fan is composed of the choicest
feathers of our native birds, and set in ravine metal of the most beautiful
kind, studded with pearls and other precious stones.
We
have pearls, diamonds, and other precious stones of a very remarkable kind,
whose electricities are supposed to have a certain influence over the wearer.
Thus, diamonds in Montalluyah have, it is thought, a tendency to increase the
circulation; and when I have been fatigued by excessive study, a chain of
peculiar diamonds has been placed near my skin to revive me.
Ladies
sometimes wear a small turban with a gold tassel on the crown of the head. For
the open air the head is covered with a turban, in front of which is a small
shade, which, by means of a spring, falls down and protects the eyes and face
from the sun.
Ladies
of superior quality rarely wear turbans, for they seldom go abroad in the heat
of the sun, and when they do, they are shaded by a canopy, supported at each
corner by a pole, and borne by four men. When walking in their grounds ladies
use long veils, covering them from head to ankle, which they also wear when on
horseback, but they never mount in the heat of the sun.
Every
unmarried woman, without exception of class, wears a distinctive feature on her
dress. The drapery is fixed with a jewel to the right shoulder, and the right
arm is bare. On the other hand, the married woman's arms are always covered
with falling drapery, though by certain movements she shows the arm. It is not
till after marriage that the lady is allowed to wear very elaborate costumes.
GENTLEMAN'S
COSTUME.
By
men an elastic linen case or chemise, made of a material which will stretch to
any size, and cling to the form, is worn next the skin. This, reaching just
below the knee, is short in the sleeves, and very ornamental about the neck,
leaving the throat bare. It is changed daily by the poor, and twice a day by
the rich. Over it is worn a tunic of rich material, with sleeves differing from
each both in form and colour.
The
trousers of the men consist of a large mass of drapery of very fine light
material finer than cambric, prepared from leaves which have passed through a
certain process, and are afterwards woven. This is wound round and round the
leg. As many folds are required to protect the body from the scorching heat, it
will be seen that lightness is an essential quality. The trouser, otherwise
full, is narrow at the ankle, where it is confined by a band of the same
material, of gold or of jewels, according to the quality of the wearer. Gloves
are not worn by men, but their trousers being so massive they can place their
hands in the ample folds when walking in the sun.
Another
important article of male attire is a large piece of drapery, which, fastened
in front and on one shoulder with a jewel chain, is carried to the back, and
being attached to the opposite arm, falls in graceful folds below one knee,
where it may be fastened. It may also be thrown back and worn as a cloak or
covering; in any case it descends in graceful folds.
The
feet of our men are bare, and are rubbed with an oleaginous preparation, which
keeps them lithesome, and prevents them from being browned by the sun. The
under part of the foot is protected by a sole secured by sandals. The hair,
whether of the head or beard, is never cut, and we have no shaving, but we have
means to prevent the hair growing on any part of the face.
The
colours of the costume vary greatly; each man selects according to his taste,
but they always harmonize. To give an example. If the drapery were crimson on
the outside, the inside would be blue; the tunic, a very rich brown; the legs
of the trousers, one red the other blue.
The
only ornament worn by the men is a chain of ravine metal, sometimes plain,
sometimes set with costly gems, and we have costumes all brown, relieved by
this chain alone.
Out
of doors the men wear a turban or head-covering, made of a very light material,
beat out to the thinness of the finest wafer, and repellent of heat. It is very
large, that the face and eyes may be protected from the sun; and, moreover, it
is furnished with a contrivance by which a current of air is kept constantly
playing on the top of the brain.
XXIII.
PREPARATIONS
FOR THE MARRIAGE.
"Cling
to each other, concentrate your hopes in each other, and if peevishness on
either side arise, chase it away by a smile."
Shortly
after the choice of a husband has been confirmed, preparations for the civil
marriage commence. Night and morning the bride is purified with baths of choice
herbs and flowers. During the fortnight prior to the solemnity myrrh and choice
spices are added to the baths, and the hair, to which great attention is given,
is combed with a comb that emits a peculiar perfume, which retains its force
for months, attracted by the warmth of the head.
This
comb is made out of one small part of the wood of a rare tree, the rest of
which has no particular virtue; so that from a whole tree, only a single comb
is obtained. Such combs are used solely for the brides, and for every bride a
fresh one is provided. The hair is combed down loosely, the long hair hanging
about the neck, shoulders, bosom, and waist.
The
marriage costume is generally purple and gold, the rich being magnificently
attired, and wearing beautiful jewels in the hair, on a small turban worn on
the crown of the head, on the bosom, waist, hands, arms, and one of the feet,
which is bare, while the other foot is covered with what may be called a silk
sock, bearing various inscriptions, such as--
"May
thy footsteps lead thee to virtue." "May thy footsteps bring thee and
thine to glory."
The
bride is radiant with light and beauty; her face is not allowed to be hidden,
and her neck, shoulder, and bosom are left bare on one side.
The
parties meet in a great public hall, and in presence of witnesses, after
stating their wish to be "doubled," _i.e._ married, sign a scroll,
which the friends present subscribe.
The
names of the newly-married pair are written in large clear characters, and
affixed to the wall, that all passing by may see them.
The
size and height of the hall are immense, but when after a certain time the
scrolls accumulate, they can easily be rolled and raised higher, and with equal
facility be lowered when this is requisite.
The
civil ceremony over, we have feasting and rejoicing, and certain observances
not unlike what formerly took place in some of the marriages among the more
cultivated Eastern nations in your planet.
Seven
young maidens wait at the bridegroom's house to receive the bride. The room
intended for the reception of the married pair is beautifully arranged,
various-coloured ornamental glass reflecting subdued tints on the objects
around.
On
each side of the bridal couch is the figure of an angel holding a scroll
exhorting to wisdom, purity, love and truth. Hidden in the drapery of the couch
are self-playing instruments, whose soft music, awakened by the agitation of
the air, and accompanied by delicate perfumes, sounds like the song of angels.
The
bridesmaids undress the bride and throw over her a silver-gauze transparent
lace, which gives her a fairy-like, vapoury appearance, as she reclines on the
couch, with her long hair partly covering the beautiful outline of her figure,
and the bridesmaids strew flowers around her.
When
all is ready, the young maidens send to bid the bridegroom enter, who, clad in
a silken garment, is conducted by two friends to the threshold of the bridal
apartment. The seven maidens then chant a short prayer, wishing the married
couple all joy, and, each having kissed the bride, depart.
The
day of the civil marriage is one of unalloyed joy. In the selection of the day
even the elements are studied by men specially devoted to meteorology, who,
with perfect infallibility, can predict the weather for a fortnight.
Three
months after the birth of each child the marriage ceremony is repeated, the
same assembling of friends, the feasting, and the same purification and
adornment of the bride taking place as when the parties were married.
No
religious ceremony, with the exception of a short prayer, takes place on the
day of the civil marriage. The bride and bridegroom are supposed to be too much
engrossed with the thoughts of their coming joys to give proper attention to
prayers pronounced by others. The bride and bridegroom, however, are each
expected to pray in private as their own hearts may prompt, and some days prior
to the marriage a paper is given to each, in which some of the leading
responsibilities and considerations are noted, to the end that, if necessary,
their pious thoughts may be directed into the right channel.
The
religious ceremony takes place at a convenient period, when a year has expired
after the civil marriage, and we are justified in hoping that the newly married
pair, by their conduct to each other, have given evidence that they are worthy
of the blessings now to be solemnly invoked. When the day arrives the bride is
dressed in white without a single jewel. Both she and the bridegroom prostrate
themselves when receiving the blessing. As the ceremony is supposed to be
exclusively religious, there is no feasting.
If
the couple have had any serious dissension during the year the religious
ceremony is postponed, but great efforts are made to reconcile the difference,
and if these are successful the solemnity takes place.
When,
on the other hand, a reconciliation cannot be effected, the law insists on a
separation of the parties, who, however, may be reconciled at any time. As
neither is allowed to marry again, polygamy is forbidden, and as irregularities
are out of the question, a reconciliation can almost always be effected,
unless, indeed, there is some cause sufficiently grave to render a separation
necessarily final. Such causes are exceptional in the extreme.
* *
* * *
The
precautions taken in the selection of a husband and the watchfulness of our
system, prevent any great incompatibility of disposition, and the existence of
those evils which formerly were of daily occurrence. Provision is made even for
those accidents which sometimes occur after marriage, and which of old had
often led to disappointment and misery. For example, when it happens that a
child is still-born, or for some reason must be put out of the way, neither the
father nor mother is at first made aware of the fact, but the loss is
immediately supplied. Every birth is instantly communicated by telegraph to the
central department, at whatever hour of night or day it may take place. The
number registered every instant is great, and the birth of twins is a frequent
occurrence. When a child is born dead, one of a pair of twins is transferred to
the mother, and placed in her arms. If she ask any question the nurse and
doctor answer her gently and kindly, but are not allowed to mention the
substitution.
It
is not until the patient is completely re-established, and all is in order,
that she is informed of what has passed, and she has then the option of
retaining the child, or of allowing it to be taken back to its own mother.
Cases of premature birth, or of deformed infants now however rarely occur,
except as a consequence of accidents which cannot be prevented.
Husband
and wife are now really considered and treated as one. At places of amusement,
and in public conveyances, they pay for one only. In calculating the number of
persons present, we say, for example, "there are 200 doubles, and 100
singles;" this with you would make 500--we count them as 300 only.
XXIV.
FLOWERS.
"In
the celestial spheres, flowers breathe music as well as fragrance."
Allusion
has been made to the use of flowers at the "choice" meetings, as the
medium through which the maiden indicates the gentleman on whom her choice has
fallen.
Flowers
are very beautiful in Montalluyah. They are highly cultivated, and great pains
are bestowed upon them; their names are given to stars and to women, so that
often a lady will at once be associated with a beautiful flower and a brilliant
star.
Every
flower has a well-known language of its own; many convey comparatively long
expressions of emotion, both pleasing and the reverse, and the meaning of each
may be qualified or increased by its union with others. In the language of flowers
all at an early age are instructed. The meaning associated with each flower is
universally understood, its name at once conveying its language as distinctly
as though the whole of the sentence were spoken in so many words. Indeed many
interesting, and even long conversations are carried on between a gentleman and
lady through a floral medium.
A
young lady, instead of entering into conversation or expressing her sentiments
in words, may present a flower either in the first instance or by way of
answer. A married lady receiving visitors has generally fresh flowers at hand,
which she often separates to present one to the visitor.
The
following are instances of language associated with flowers:--
Vista
Rodo.--A plant bearing a little flower like a diamond in transparency and
brilliancy, and exhaling from every green leaf a beautiful perfume.
"The
stars in heaven thou makest to blush by the sweetness of thy breath."
"I
deny not that they possess thy brilliancy, But thy fragrance they deplore. May
I hope for the boon of thy lustre near me Through the journey of life, To teach
me to be happy, To cultivate my admiration of the beautiful, To bid me seek the
joys of home, And teach me the greatness of my Maker!"
Oronza.--A
flower unknown to your planet. It is white, the centre studded with little
spots in relief, so closely resembling turquoise and pearls that unless touched
they might be mistaken for real stones placed on the flower.
"At
sight of thee, malignity flies away and the spirits of peace and goodness
surround me, encouraging me to all great and noble deeds, making me forget to
look back on my folly, and bidding me gaze forward into the future and the
realms of hope.
"You
exalt me; you purify me; say you will part from me no more."
Mosca.--The
moss rose.
...."Come
to me, Thy virtues are more brilliant than precious stones; Thy breath exhales
intoxicating perfume; Thy beauty is a continual feast. Tell me thy heart shall
be my haven, To my bosom I will press thee, And thy leaves shall embrace me
with their fragrant affection."
Each
kind of rose has its separate language. Thus, Javellina, the single-leaf
hedge-rose, is associated with lines indicative of "the sweet purity of
youth." Angellina, the white rose, is associated with lines indicative of
"gentle endurance and pure love;" and Orvee, the yellow rose, with
lines indicative of "affection combined with jealousy."
* *
* * *
Some
flowers have qualified, some disagreeable meanings attached to them.
No
man, however nearly allied to a lady, or however great his cause for
displeasure may be, is allowed to say to her anything unpleasant except through
the medium of flowers.
The
only exception is in favour of the husband, whose privilege is seldom used; not
only because it is thought more civilised to use flowers as the medium on such
occasions, but more especially because marriages are now so well assorted that
occasion for complaint scarcely arises on either side.
At
the marriage meetings flowers having the slightest disagreeable words attached
to them are strictly forbidden.
As
an example of flowers having a qualified or disagreeable import take the
following:--
Ragopargee.--The
white lily.
"Cold
but truthful, and as constant as the drops of Mount Isione."
In a
small recess of Mount Isione two drops of water, clear as crystal, constantly
fall, having percolated the rock above. As soon as two drops have fallen two
others succeed, two being the invariable number. The interval between the fall
of each pair of drops is equal and scarcely perceptible.
These
drops never cease to fall night or day, and they have already by this
accumulation formed a lake at the base of the mountain.
Voulervole--Convolvulus.
"False
allurements! Thy beauty is to please but for a day, Like the magnet it attracts
us, And then thou wouldst make us weep By fading before our eyes.
"Go,
fickle flower, For thou shalt not be mine Until more lasting; thou canst learn
to be."
Mooreska.--Fuchsia.
"Thy
beauty is dazzling; But, alas! its bloom will fade The nearer we approach. For
thy external attractions find no echo within. I can never take thee to my
bosom."
* *
* * *
Romeafee.--The
pink lily. This flower is associated with excessive love of dress, and the
language attached to it ends with the words.
"As
glaring to the eye as Kiloom."
The
gorgeous appearance of sunset is personified in poetical legends by a master
spirit, called "Kiloom."
The
colours of sunset are gaudy and vivid beyond measure, and cast intense hues on
all objects. Our sunsets, though grand, are far from being so agreeably
soothing as those in your planet, but they leave an after-glow, which gives
light during the night when darkness would otherwise prevail.
* *
* * *
Flowers
are profusely used in our great festivals. I collect a fęte given to me on the
occasion of an anniversary, when there appeared a cavalcade of one hundred
camelopards, bearing each on its back a kiosk, in which was a beautiful woman.
All the camelopards were united together, as it seemed to the eye, by wreaths
of flowers, though in fact these concealed strong thongs, with which the
animals were really secured. Each animal was attended by a swarthy native of
the country whence it came.
XXV.
FLOWERS
IMPROVED BY ELECTRICITY.
"Marry
nature's gifts the one with the other, amalgamate sympathetic electricities in
their due proportions, and give increased beauty to loveliness, even as ye give
increased strength to iron and marble, by welding their particles into one
imperishable mass."
We
discovered the mode in which nature operates in the production of plants and
flowers, and our discovery has enabled us to give them new forms and varied
colours, to increase their natural odours and to endow them even with fragrance
of which in their natural state they are devoid.
Enclosed
in every seed is a portion of electricity, and on this depend, in the first
instance, the life of the plant, its form and colour, its leaves and blossoms.
If any crack or injury to the seed has allowed the electricity to escape, the
growth of the plant is prevented.
When,
after some time, the seed having been sown, its electricity has attracted a
sufficient quantity of the electricity of the ground, and the two electricities
are, as it were, married, their united heat and power force the seed to burst.
Part
of the united electricity serves for the leaves, and when its supply is
deficient the leaves wither and die, despite every effort to preserve them.
Another
part serves to give form and impart colour to the plant. Green is the colour
that the earth, in connection with the electricity of light, has the greatest
tendency to generate.
In
many plants, after the electricity has thrown off its principal strength in the
leaves and blossoms, what remains sinks exhausted into the root, there to
repose, and, like a child forsaken by its mother, the leaves become sickly and
fade. When in due season the electricity again becomes invigorated by repose,
and by union with the electricity of the ground, the united essences go forth
again to seek the light and busy themselves in the reproduction of foliage and
flowers.
The
essence of the combined electricity having acquired additional power from the
contact with the electricity of light and of the sun, is forced to the
extremities and joints of the stem, where the forms of the flower are
permanently developed and preserved.
The
electricity concentrated or, rather, coagulated at the joints and extremities
of the plant there forms hard gatherings, which, after being saturated with the
electricity of light and of the sun, ripen and burst into flower.
There
are, as you know, great resemblances in many of the operations of nature. From
observing the mode in which electricity thus coagulates and forms gatherings or
tumours in flower-plants, we acquired valuable knowledge, including the secret
of the formation of gatherings or tumours of all kinds in the human body.
The
sap of the plant is the repository or reservoir of the united electricities,
from which every part of the flower is to be nourished.
PROCESS
FOR CHANGING FORM.
This
is an outline of our process when we would change the form of flowers:
A
slip from a plant, according to the kind of flower desired, is placed in a
flower-pot filled with mould, the bottom of which can be unscrewed and removed
at pleasure.
As
soon as the slip has taken root, and the smallest fibres have sprung from the
stem of the plant, the form of the desired flower is made out of a piece of
ravine metal as thin as a piece of silk.
This
metal-flower, after immersion in a solution which attracts the particular
electricity to be used, is enclosed in a hollow block of the same metal,
corresponding to the flower form, from which it rises in a shape somewhat like
that of a funnel, till it ends in a very fine point or orifice as fine and as
hollow as the finest hair. This point is inserted in the root of the plant.
Underneath
the metal-flower form is placed a bag of sympathetic electricity, and the mouth
of the bag is so arranged as to fit closely round the form of the metal-flower
in such a way that the electricity has no escape but into the hollow metal
block and through its fine, hollow point. The metal point, previously to its
insertion in the root of the plant, is prepared with a solution to prevent the
escape of any of the electricity through its pores.
As
soon as the bag is opened the electricity is attracted into the metal form, and
having no other escape, proceeds instantaneously through the funnel and through
the hair-tube into the plant. In doing this, it retains the form implanted by
its contact with the metal model, and by the forced passage through which it
has become married with another electricity.
As
soon as it is attracted by the solution with which the inside of the metal is
covered, a shock is produced which materially assists the operation, by causing
the electricity to imprint itself with greater force and certainty on the
embryo plant with which you will recollect the hair-point has been connected.
It
is essential that the charge should be sufficiently strong to modify or
overpower the electricity already existing in the plant, in order to change the
form which this would otherwise take; but, at the same time, care is taken that
the charge is not too powerful, for in that case, and particularly if an
antipathetic electricity be employed, the flower would be instantly killed. The
electricity is therefore applied in gentle proportions at first, and then the
operation is repeated several times.
PRODUCTION
OF COLOUR.
It
is electricity that, as I have said, gives colour to plants. Their varied tints
depend on the sympathy or attraction of their electricity to sun and light
electricities. Particular parts of the plant, from the nature of their fibre,
have the power to attract larger portions than others of the colouring
electricities.
When
it is wished to produce different colours in the flower other electricities are
used, with or without those producing variety of form. The electricities for
producing colours are contained in small pouches, as many in number as the
colours we desire to produce. Then, being placed together at the base of the
flower-pot, each on the particular part of the "flower form" which is
to be affected, their orifices are opened and the contents of each one are
instantaneously emitted.
Most
plants are susceptible of every variety of colour; thus are produced roses,
pink, blue, green, lilac, brown, fire-colour, and sun-colour, which last is a
colour so brilliant that the eye that has long gazed upon it stands in need of
repose.
Amongst
the electricities for giving colours is sun electricity, received in different
ways. Again, the electricities of some birds give lovely colours; and so does
that of the gold-fish. Moss gives a colour resembling fire-sparks. Frogs
produce a beautiful violet.
Where
the flowers and leaves have not a decided perfume of their own, we can give a
beautiful fragrance to either, though not to both on the same plant. To produce
this result, we inoculate the plant with certain fragrant gases. Our dahlias,
unlike yours, yield a highly fragrant and delightful perfume.
* *
* * *
The
plants treated by us in these ways are fitly called flowers, presenting as they
do a mass of blossoms and exhaling delicious perfumes. They act, mediately or
immediately, on the concentrated light of the organization through the nerves
of smell, as beautiful sounds through the medium of the ear, or as beautifully
harmonised colours through the eye. You will recollect that a modification of
concentrated light is supposed to be the link through which the soul
communicates its impressions to the brain, on whose divisions it is made to act
in electric forms.
Besides
an infinite variety of flowers, we produce every variety of colour and perfume
in the leaves of the evergreens which adorn our streets and habitations,
emitting healthy and refreshing fragrance, increased by every movement of the
wind.
* *
* * *
CREATION
OF FORMS.
Not
wholly unconnected with this subject is the creation of electric forms for
amusement at a distance from the operator. This is effected by the aid of tubes
made from the membranes covering the eyes of birds, which are invisible to the
naked eye even when at a short distance from the observer.
In
the mouth of one of these tubes, which spreads out slightly, is placed a small
form made of grains of powder obtained from the coloured seeds of flowers, and,
a bag of electricity being applied, the fluid rushes through the tube.
Instantly, at the other end, appears the figure or form traced at the mouth,
but of ordinary or gigantic stature, proportioned to the power or quantity of
electricity employed.
The
forms can be varied or changed at will, and have so life-like an appearance
that I have seen persons go up to the supposed gentlemen or ladies and speak to
them, and only discover that they were shadows when they have come up close to
them, or when the operator has at will made them vanish.
I
should tell you how our attention was first called to the subject of
reproducing forms by electricity.
We
had observed numberless instances in which copies of forms were reproduced by
electricity, as in the case of pictures in water, reflections in mirrors,
mirages, apparitions, and pictures in the air; and had noticed that lightning
would frequently imprint, on substances like trees, pictures of surrounding
objects. These appearances have, I believe, been observed even in your world.
SUN-FORCING.
There
is a highly beautiful flower called Luania, a name of which the approximate
translation is the _soirée_ or "assembly" flower. Its colours are
most brilliant, but its blossom only lasts about ten hours. When that short
term has expired, the leaves fall, and nothing remains but a small pod,
containing seeds.
In
the following year, but not before, the flower blossoms again, and falls in
like manner.
The
seeds of the Luania do not mature for three years,--that is to say, until after
the flower has blossomed three times; but we have, however, the means of
producing flowers from the seeds in three days.
The
seeds are placed in handsome vases, which contain fine sand and some new
goat's-milk, and are covered over with perforated zinc, taken from the great
ravine, the metal having been previously prepared to attract the rays of the
sun.
The
vase, with the metal thus prepared, is exposed to the light of the sun, between
the hours of seven and eight in the morning.
The
power of the prepared metal is great, and so strongly attracts and retains
heat, that it renders the surrounding atmosphere quite cold.
One
hour in the sun is sufficient to bring leaves from the Luania. The metal
covering is then removed, and the vases are placed under a forcing-glass, the
power of which is doubled on the second day, and further increased on the
third. The flowers then appear at once clad in all their brilliancy and beauty.
The
forced flowers, like the natural blossoms, which they excel in beauty, live ten
hours only, but they so far differ from them that their pods do not contain
seeds.
The
colours of the flowers are bright pink, golden, lilac, lilac striped with
white, and a beautiful green striped with white gold. The leaves of this,
instead of being green like the others, are of a coral colour mixed with purple
blue.
The
perfume of these flowers surpasses every other fragrance; it is most
refreshing, and a lady will have no other for a _réunion_ when she can obtain
this flower.
XXVI.
SONG
OF ADMIRATION.
"The
beautiful is an attribute of heavenly perfection.
"Give
vent to your emotions in words, in flowers, in music, and above all in good and
noble acts."
The
enthusiastic admiration of the lover has modes of expression besides the
graceful presentation of flowers, and the soul-stirring breathings of the harp.
The
following, to which I have added the explanation of certain terms, conveys as
nearly as may be the meaning of some verses addressed by a lover to the object
of his admiration. Many of the expressions will probably be thought
hyperbolical. You will, however, remember that our pulsation is more rapid than
yours.
* *
* * *
Like
Lertees[1] at sunrise, opening into life, are thine eyes;
Sparkling
and darting like Zacostees[2] the most rare.
Their
light overpowers as the air before a storm, when Raskutshi spreads his wings
across the temples of his people.[3]
Soft
as the Kamouska[4] thine eyes penetrate and search the soul with ingenuity
exercised by Orestee[5] to find a treasure.
Sweet
as the milk of the Meleeta[6] is thy breath.
Thy
breasts are like the electricity of Turvee.[7]
Thy
laugh is like the shooting of the stars,[8] silvery and wondrously charming.
Dangerous
art thou, for thou allurest mankind from every pursuit, and, like to the
electricity of the whale,[9] dost thou draw us far and near.
Then
as the Martolooti[10] dost thou fascinate us to the spot.
Graceful
as the Castrenka[11] move thine arms.
More
playful than the Chilarti when it smiles,[12] and more luscious than the juice
of the Tootmanyoso's fruit[13] is the balm of thy lips.
The
charms thou displayest are like the perfume emitted by the everlasting
gulf;[14]
Durable
in their attraction as the Yurdzin-nod.[15]
As
surely dost thou penetrate the heart as the venom of the serpent permeates the
blood.
Precious
as the fat on the serpent's head[16] is the marrow of thy bones.
Firm
as the Mestua Mountain[17] is thy will.
In
thy goodness thy maker must rejoice.
Thy
constant love doth make me live many lives in one; a day seemeth a year, and a
year but a day.
Rise,
wet thy feet,[18] and onward let us go to Stainer's fount.[19]
There
to calm our thirst before singing to our Maker's praise.
And
even as that sweet source ever flows,
So
may our lives flow to the end of time, as constant and as bright.
Then
come to my arms, and twine thyself about me, and I will support thee with
strength and power, as the Mountain Supporter[20] sustains the air-suspended
cities of Montalluyah.
* *
* * *
EXPLANATION
OF CERTAIN TERMS USED IN THE PRECEDING SONG OF ADMIRATION.
1.
Lertees.--A lovely mountain spangled with transparent stones, which is so
resplendent at sunrise that none can look at it without putting gauze before
the eyes. Many of the stones were used to ornament the Mountain Supporter.
2.
Zacostees.--Precious stones found near the tomb of a celebrated and beautiful
woman, named Zacosta, whose loveliness, goodness, and varied talents, created
for her many bitter enemies, and exposed her to cruel persecutions. She died
heart-broken, and her tears are said to have been petrified into these precious
stones called Zacostees which are greatly prized as ornaments for turbans and
for ladies' bosoms.
Though
reviled and persecuted, Zacosta suffered without a murmur, and rose superior to
oft-renewed temptations, and to the bitter taunts of the many incarnate evil
spirits who called her an idiot simply because, lovely and accomplished as she
was, she patiently bore privations and sufferings when many were ready to pour
riches into her lap. To the last she resisted the tempter, however fascinating
the form he took, and never lost faith to the day when she calmly closed a life
in which she had so greatly suffered.
The
legend adds that Zacosta was wafted by angels to one of the celestial stars,
there to dwell in love, peace, and joy, and that she daily prays for the
alleviation of the sufferings of her persecutors, doomed to pass through bitter
ordeals, so pure and magnanimous is her spirit.
It
should be added, that according to the prevalent belief, the higher order of
spirits, those of the truly good, blessed in their own celestial spheres with
every joy, occupy themselves by seeking to benefit others in the nether worlds.
Their prayers are necessarily unselfish, unless we regard as selfish the joys,
to them great indeed, which result from the delight of doing good.
One
of the leading principles of the system which I gave to Montalluyah, namely,
the promotion of those possessing superior talents, goodness and industry, was
intended to imitate the mode in which, according to our belief, the spirits of
the good are elevated to superior ranks of spheres according to the manner in
which they pass through their several progressive states.
In
Montalluyah slander is regarded with horror. A person of either sex who
slandered a woman, and even one who gave credence to a slander without careful
investigation, would be severely punished and condemned to wear "the dress
of shame," on which would be exposed the nature of the offence, and the
base motives of the traducer.
In
the cases of slander that occurred at the beginning of my reign the offence was
generally traced to envy, to the inferiority of the slanderers to the standard
of their victims whom they sought to reduce to their own level, rarely to a
desire for good.
Our
horror of slanderers had been increased by the persecutions which numbers of
virtuous persons like Zacosta had suffered from the malevolent; the very
anxiety of the innocent to repel accusations having formerly been looked upon
by our hot-blooded people as evidence of guilt. Many had preferred to suffer in
silence rather than seem to give life and consistency to a charge by their
efforts to repel it.
We
have a saying in Montalluyah that to attack beauty and goodness is to attack
Heaven itself, from whose attributes they are derived.
3.
Raskutshi.--Supposed to be the king of the air, and ruler of all the zephyrs
and spirits of the region. According to our poetical legends Raskutshi comes
near the Earth when angry, and his advent is followed by a terrific storm. The
air preceding certain storms in our climate has a peculiar effect in creating a
species of torpor. It is then supposed that "Raskutshi spreads his wings
over the temples of his people."
4.
Kamouska.--A loving little animal like a bird, very beautiful and gentle, with an
eye of jet black, and of great brilliancy, but softened when the little thing
wishes to be petted. She likes much the electricity of the mouth, and puts up
her face as though wishing to be kissed, at the same time emitting a beautiful
musical sound. Her body is covered with the softest down, finer than that of
the ostrich or the marabout. The feathers are of the richest gold and crimson,
mingled with grey, her breast of the richest crimson conceivable. The top of
her head is gold, the rest of her body greyish white, her beak pale pink, her
tail of green and gold, intermingled with touches of greyish-white and red. She
feeds on the blossoms of a flower growing amongst a peculiar grass, and on all
kinds of fruit. She does not drink, but is satisfied with juices from the rich
fruits which we have all the year round. Kamouska, I should say, is the name of
the female bird, who alone is petted, the male being vicious and without
feathers. Frequent reference is made to her by our poets.
5.
Orestee.--The name of a man who invented an ingenious instrument for
discovering diamonds in the bowels of the earth, and for penetrating to the
spot where they lay.
This
instrument possesses an electricity sympathetic to diamonds only. The presence
of them is indicated by an exceedingly sensitive arm of the instrument which
being retained on the spot indicated, puts forth tendrils that gradually
perforate the earth, and do not stop until a precious stone is reached.
6.
Meleeta.--A pet animal of most peculiar formation. Its body resembles that of a
beast, and is covered with hair of a light hue, interspersed with dark chestnut
spots. Its belly is white, as likewise are the feathers of its bird-like wings
and tail, though these are varied with touches of crimson, blue, and gold. Its
eyes are large, and of a jet black, its neck is long and graceful like that of
a swan, its back is short and sleek, and its legs and feet, which are armed
with claws, are small, graceful, and mobile. But its most remarkable
peculiarity is the resemblance of its face to that of man. The males, which
have horns like polished white ivory, are not petted.
The
female yields a delicious milk, sweet and refreshing to the smell as to the
taste, and with peculiar qualities when taken fresh from the animal. Meleetas
are brought into the room during the early morning or "fruit-meal"
repast, and each answers to her name, and stands still to be milked.
I
had one much attached to me, who would come of her own accord, flutter her
wings, and crouch at the top of my chair. The attendant was obliged to milk the
animal close to my chair, and the affectionate little thing would watch the man
until he handed me the milk, as though she feared he might give it to one of
the guests. Infants are suckled by these tame animals.
At
the beginning of my reign the animals were very rare, and indeed nearly
extinct, their only food being the nut of a tree then extremely scarce, for
before the discovery of the application of electricity the tree had been burnt
for use. By my order large tracts were planted with these trees, and there are
now large enclosures in which herds of Meleetas are preserved.
The
young are very precocious, and can soon be fed on nuts, and consequently taken
from the mother, who remains in milk for a long time--nearly a year and a half.
Great
interest is taken in the Meleetas, and they are treated with much gentleness,
each having a small house to itself, lined with soft down, and furnished with a
perch.
They
are very intelligent and grateful, and I well recollect the astonishment of my
favourite when she laid her first egg. She would take hold of my robe and pull
me, that I might look at the novel production, and she would make all the time
a pretty noise like a laugh, seeming to be astonished and overjoyed.
I
sometimes wore long flowing robes, and was often accompanied by this little
creature when I strolled through my grounds. If it was at all damp she would
hold up the hem of my garment with her mouth, that it might not get wet. When
with me in my study, she would crouch down and remain quiet at my bidding.
The
Meleetas resent ill-treatment, though not spitefully. They can only raise
themselves a small distance from the ground, but I have seen one when offended
flutter, fly up quickly, and descend, giving the offender a smart box on the
ear with her wing.
7. Turvee.--An
insect whose electricity forcibly attracts and subdues the power of man.
8.
Shooting stars are, in our legends, said to be companies of good angels, linked
in brightness and despatched from one star to another, on messages of love and
peace, sometimes to protect an inferior world from the too great inroads of
legions of evil spirits.
9.
Whale electricity.--Of all, the most powerfully attractive.
10.
The Martolooti.--A basilisk, or serpent, possessing wondrous fascinating power
over its prey.
11.
Castrenka, or Flower of Grace.--A plant with two branches only, which
spontaneously or at the slightest breath move always together in a most
graceful manner.
12.
Chilarti.--A little pet animal, always playful and smiling.
13.
The Tootmanyoso's fruit.--That is to say the Allmanyuka-- the fruit invented by
me, of which hereafter.
14.
The perfume of the everlasting gulf.--A gulf the waters of which emitted a
delicious fragrance, and when taken from the gulf would not keep together, but
separated into drops like tears.
In
our legends it is supposed that a lovely woman had for some grave sin been
turned into a gulf, and that her breathings were continually wafted towards
Heaven in prayer.
15.
The Yurdzin-nod.--The hide of the hippopotamus, which is of extraordinary
durability, and when prepared for use may be said to be imperishable.
16.
The fat of the serpent's head is very precious, and is used for many important
purposes. Prepared in a certain way it is even supposed to strengthen the
intellect.
The
"mind-tamers" attending madmen--who were numerous when I began to
reign--carried with them this fat, and sometimes the head itself, as an
antidote against the contagion of insanity.
17.
The Mestua Mountain.--The largest in Montalluyah, supposed to be the firmest and
most lasting of mountains. By her firmness the sea's mighty inroads have been
arrested in their progress, and the waters have been driven back. The
"will," which is likened in firmness to the mountain, is "the
will to overcome evil."
18.
Wet thy feet.--This ablution is required before prayer.
19.
Stainer's fount.--Stainer was a good man, who was never known to harm or pain
any one by action or word, and from whom, as he drank of its waters daily, the
spring derived its name. The water, wholesome and cooling, is said to be the
purest in Montalluyah.
Water,
a thing of hourly use, and moreover supposed to enter largely into man's
organization, is in Montalluyah treated as of the utmost importance to health,
and its quality is watched with great care. The water for the especial use of
the city is collected in reservoirs, and is always examined before the people
are allowed to make use of it. If certain electricities are wanting, though it
might be faultless in other respects, both the supplies, within and without,
are stopped until means have been taken to infuse the deficient electricity.
The water from Stainer's fount never required testing. This was always pure,
never changed its component parts, and never ceased to flow.
20.
The Mountain Supporter.--Reference to this great work is made in nearly all our
poems, which invariably refer to the beauty, splendour, strength, firmness,
durability, grandeur, and usefulness of the work, and to its resemblance to my
polity.
XXVII.
SYLIFA.
"Here
the soul has illumined its temporary dwelling with rays of light--the gift of
Heaven."
Among
the children of poor parents taken care of and educated by my orders, there was
a beautiful girl named Sylifa, the daughter of a labouring man who worked in
the ravines.
In
the early part of my reign I had been struck with her beauty and intelligence,
and directed that she should be brought up and educated in my palace.
Her
eyes were almond-shaped, large, long, lustrous, and languishing; and might be
pictured by fancy as beaming with ethereal flowers, crystalline fountains in
all their brightness, painting, sculpture, and poetry.
Her
lovely mouth never gave utterance to a thought that was not kind and good;
indeed, all her features were beautiful, and the soft and luxuriant hair hung
down to her feet in graceful curls--the back hair was much longer, and, when
unbound, fell to the ground in rich masses.
She
had a musical, merry laugh, which, whether they would or not, could set all
present laughing, however seriously inclined.
Her
talents were many, her versatility was great; for she was accomplished in
various pursuits, and in most of them excelled. When singing or playing the
harp, her dreamy eyes were more than earthly, and seemed as though beaming with
poetry inspired of Heaven.
The
beauty of her mind could be read in her face; she looked so heavenly, that when
grown into womanhood I have, in a moment of enthusiasm, been almost tempted to
fold her in my arms; but I never forgot my great mission, even in the most
perilous moments.
I
took particular care of the lovely girl, and selected for her husband a very
handsome man and a great poet, who was chosen in due form by Sylifa at one of
our marriage "choice" meetings.
The
union was happy, though, perhaps, they loved each other too well.
The
married couple resided in my palace, and Sylifa continued to afford to me and
my guests the greatest recreation and amusement.
She
was very luxurious, and very particular in her habits. I have seen her, while
amusing us, suddenly (perhaps designedly), stop short, and direct her attendant
to bring the golden salver, telling us at the same time that her hand (and she
had exquisite hands) was a little soiled. She would moisten them with the
perfumed water, and then resume her task of amusing us; our attention having,
in the meantime, been kept in breathless suspense.
In
my palace under the sea (for I had a submarine retreat, of which I may speak
hereafter) there was a large sheet or basin of water, in which she would sport
most gracefully, modestly attired, as a nymph of the sea.
She
always identified herself with the part she sustained. As a sea nymph, she
could never be induced to speak; but, when we addressed her, she always replied
in musical tones, because, according to our legends, mermaids always discoursed
in song.
In
the basin of water there were willows, hung with small lyres, through which
Sylifa would show her face, and then, taking one of the lyres, would play and
sing exquisitely, always keeping up the illusion.
She
was very fond of a lion brought up in my palace, with which, as a cub, she had
played when a child. As a woman, she had complete mastery over the noble
animal. Both as a child and as a woman, she, with the lion, formed the subject
of many of the beautiful pictures that adorned my palaces.
For
a particular reason, we once separated Sylifa from her husband for a day. She
refused to eat; neither would she retire to rest. As the day was ending she
walked into the room where I sat with my numerous guests.
She
said, "Do you love Sylifa?" "Yes," was my answer.
"Then give me back my Oma. Without him I die; already I droop; to-morrow I
shall be no more."
When
asked to amuse us, she said she could not; her heart was too heavy. We tried to
console her, but it was useless; she wept, and her long hair was wet with her
tears.
After
two days, we were obliged to restore Oma to the devoted Sylifa.
Sylifa
was enthusiastic in her love of flowers. It was she who suggested that, at the
_fęte_ of which I have spoken, the camelopards should be united by wreaths of
flowers. She sought and obtained my permission to mount the tallest of the
stately animals, and appeared, resplendent in beauty, amongst the beautiful
women who graced the _fęte_.
XXVIII.
THE
YOUNG GIRL RESTORED.
MADNESS.
"A
sleep of sorrow."
Formerly,
as before observed, many were pronounced mad who were perfectly sane, but
madness itself was scarcely ever recognised until by violent actions or
incoherent words the patient had excited fear in others. Numbers, afflicted
with incipient madness, might have been easily cured had its presence been
detected; but they were allowed to inflict great injury upon their neighbours.
This they did the more effectually as their madness was not even suspected
until the symptoms of the malady became too glaring to be disregarded.
I
will relate to you a case which presented some remarkable features. A little
girl about four years old fell down some stone steps, and received a violent
blow across the nose, which swelled enormously. She probably was otherwise injured,
but the injury on the nose was the only one then observed. After some time the
effects of the accident were to all appearance completely cured.
As
the girl grew in years, she gave signs of marvellous talent. But apparently
unable to apply herself to any particular pursuit, she became wearied of one
thing after another, and continually thirsted for novelty. This incessant love
of change extended to everything, to friendship, love, dress, amusements; to
the most serious and most trifling matters. She was happy and melancholy at
intervals, and always in excess; nay, in her fits of extreme despondency she
would even meditate suicide.
Though
disliked by some for her wayward and capricious disposition, she was a great
favourite with others. I should add that she was extremely beautiful, indeed
lovely, very witty, highly gifted, and withal so fascinating that she never
failed to charm every one at the first interview, the novelty of the
excitement, and a natural desire to please giving impulse to her will. Although
possessing so many gifts, she was very jealous and envious of others.
Many
were the offers of marriage which she accepted in succession, abandoning one
suitor after the other without any adequate reason or any feeling of
compunction. At length she unexpectedly accepted a man of whom she had scarcely
any previous knowledge.
The
marriage, made at her request in a headstrong fit of impatience, took place a
few days after the proposal had been made. A child was born, but long before
its birth she had become tired of her husband. The child she loved passionately
at first, but soon became weary even of this object of her tenderest affection,
and looked upon it with indifference! All these events had taken place during
the reign of my predecessor. Under my laws such a marriage would have been
impossible.
At
the age of twenty-six a frightful accident happened to this lady--she fell into
a vat of scalding liquor--a beverage prepared with honey. We have a very
effective remedy for scalds, and, though severely burnt, she was eventually
cured, but the fright had sadly shocked her nerves; a violent fever seized the
blood, she fell into a trance, her eyes were fixed and glassy, and she gave no
signs of movement except by swallowing the little nourishment that was offered
her in a liquid form.
This
trance lasted some days. On awakening, the patient asked with the tone and
manner of a child, how old she was? She was extremely calm, and a remarkable
change had come over her. On the doctor's asking why she inquired about her
age, she replied that during her sleep she had been in what seemed a long, sad,
and changeful dream! She then related some details of the injury she received
when at four years old she fell down the stone steps. Those around her at first
thought that her mind was wandering, but this notion was soon dispelled. She
spoke of incidents of her life extending over many years, as though they passed
in a dream; one incident of this dream being that she had given birth to a
child, and suffered acute pain. At one moment she saw herself in a family of
strangers who were very kind, but she knew them not,--then she saw her family
in great grief.
One
of the impressions that this seeming sad dream made upon her was, that swarms
of insects had followed and enveloped her on all sides, stinging and causing
her excruciating suffering, which had extended over a series of years of more
than lifelong duration.
Sometimes
in moments of despondency she saw the beautiful form of an angel radiant with
light, who spoke to her in soothing tones, and entreated her to be patient,
assuring her that her sufferings were ordained for a good end, and that by
patience and the sweetness of her nature, she would attain the power of casting
from her the torments she endured, and that after doing much good during her
mortal career she would, when her time came to quit the world, be placed high
amongst myriads of angels. She said that whenever urged by despair to relieve
herself from her pains by a desperate course, this bright and beautiful angel
would stand before her and pour words of consolation and hope into her ear.
In
relating the incidents of her supposed dream, her whole manner was so different
from the former state of excitement, to which her friends had been accustomed,
that all saw she was perfectly rational, although relating as a dream what had
occurred during twenty-two years of her actual life. It seemed as though all
the time that had elapsed since she was four years of age belonged as it were
to another and differently constituted brain; and that she had now resumed the
thread of her life from the time when she was four years old, the period of the
first accident.
When
the husband and child were brought to her she knew them not, though she had
some vague notion of having seen them in her dream. The husband prayed her to
return to him: she said she was not his wife, and could not accept him as a
husband; that she felt no love for the child, and could not even like it as a
playmate. She recollected her parents when they were twenty-two years of age,
and could not understand how they could be so much changed.
In
all her occupations and amusements she acted as a young child, but she
gradually increased in understanding, and in sixteen years after her recovery
she became a most accomplished person, without, however, possessing the varied
talent of former times. She lived seventy-two years after the trance (in all
ninety-eight years) now a short life with us; but never, till the day of her
death, could she understand that she had lived during the twenty-two years which
filled up the space between the first and second accidents. Strange to say,
during that interval, no one had suspected that her brain was affected. Nearly
the whole period had elapsed before the commencement of my rule, or the evil
would have been detected and remedied, not by confining the patient and driving
her into madness, but by gentle means.
The
medical officers had no doubt of her complete re-establishment: besides,
shortly after her return to calmness they applied the tests recently
discovered, and the result furnished conclusive evidence that the malady had
been eradicated. On an examination after death there was indeed, as the doctors
thought, an unhealthy absence of certain microscopic animalcula, the effects of
whose continued presence in excess in one portion of the brain to the detriment
of others, lead to madness. The substance of the brain was poor and watery, and
it seemed as though at other times there had been more brain than was then
found; the lining of the brain was coated with a substance in outward
appearance not unlike the fur which sometimes accumulates on the tongue in a
fever. The doctors had reason to believe that this fur was composed of the
remains of the insects which, probably, had been killed at the time of the
second accident, either by the shock or the fumes of the boiling liquid, and it
was to this accidental circumstance that they were inclined to attribute the
recovery of those parts of the brain which had remained, as it were, slumbering
since the first accident.
XXIX.
THE
LITTLE GOATHERD.
"The
flower is hidden until the electricities of the sun and light draw it forth
into life and beauty."
In
speaking of the "choice of a husband," I referred to the only case I
recollected where the lady's hesitation rendered a third meeting necessary. The
exception was interesting.
Early
in my reign, whilst one day walking near the sea-shore, I was struck by the
appearance of a little girl who was attending a flock of goats. A kid had
fallen over a rock into the sea. The child was a lovely creature, with a
beautiful complexion, handsome and expressive eyes, small hands and feet, and
silken hair flowing over her shoulders. Her beauty was heightened by the
expression of tenderness and grief at the loss of the kid. I was greatly
interested, and watched her movements unperceived. She showed great
intelligence and presence of mind.
Near
the sea grows a peculiar kind of stringy reed, very strong and pliable. She
tied several of these reeds together, made a noose at one end, and with the
other end tied herself to a rock near the edge of the precipice, that she might
not overbalance herself, and be dragged down in her endeavours to recover her
kid. She then threw down the noose at the other end of the line, and after one
or two attempts succeeded with great dexterity in getting it round the body of
the kid, which she gradually hauled up to the rock where she stood. Her
movements were most graceful, and her address and dexterity truly astonishing.
As soon as her success was complete she fondled and embraced the kid as though
it had been a favourite sister whom she had saved.
In
straining over the precipice she had drawn the knot that secured her to the
rock so tight that she could not liberate herself until I came to her
assistance and set her free. I then talked with her, and found that she had
remarkable capacity, tenderness, and sweetness of nature, but was altogether
uninstructed. I said to myself, it is impossible that a creature could be found
so beautiful and intelligent unless Providence had intended her for something
better than her present occupation.
By
my orders she was thoroughly educated and cared for. She showed great aptitude
for her appointed studies, and having passed one ordeal after another with
great honour, she was ultimately, thanks to our institutions, deemed worthy of
a superior rank, and became one of our great ladies. In mind, form, and
feature, she was a remarkable person, and her manners were most sweet and
fascinating. She was a frequent guest at my palace. I delighted in her
discourse on the rare occasions when my occupations gave me the opportunity of
conversation.
Gratitude
to her benefactor had given rise to a deep affection. Observing this I told her
that the peculiarity of my position, and the necessity for completing my great
work, had decided me not to marry, and that the affection of a friend was all
that I could give her. Marry, I said, and I will always watch over you. Had I
married, she would have been my choice. In obedience to my wishes, she allowed
the "marriage choice meeting" to be called. She was so beautiful and
engaging that the number of competitors was far beyond that required to
complete the meeting. The suitors selected were the most promising young men in
the city, and held the highest positions, but all the three several marriage
meetings remained without result, except to confirm her resolution not to
marry.
By
our laws every woman, however high in rank, who elects to remain single, is
obliged to follow a calling adapted to her capacity and inclination. This
interesting person possessed a peculiar talent for inventing and improving
ciphers for telegraphic correspondence. This talent was turned to account. She
was also entrusted with the superintendence and examination of the reports made
by those charged with the instruction of the clerks engaged in the telegraph
department, and proved superior in every important quality to any of the men
occupied in similar pursuits.
XXX.
DECORATIONS
FOR AGE AND MERIT.
"...The
gate of future success, honours, and riches is always open to you."
The
ornaments, of which I have before spoken, are independent of decorations worn
by women as distinctive marks of age; for the age of a woman entitles her to
peculiar privileges above others younger than herself, and her decorations are
so worn, that these privileges may be at once recognised. At the end of every
five of our years, she is entitled to a decoration indicative of her age, and
the mode in which the last five years have been passed. Strange as it may
appear to you, with whom old age is associated with feebleness, loss of beauty,
and decayed powers--it is by our ladies looked upon as a privilege, of which
all are very jealous. If such a thing were possible, it would be a gross insult
to say that a lady was younger than was indicated by the last decoration which
she had received; and even the five successive years are marked by five small
appendages, one of which is added each year, so that she may not lose even one
of the years to which she is entitled.
Amongst
other marks of respect shown to age--a younger woman, passing her senior in
years, is expected to give her the inner side of the path, and to salute her in
passing.
No
mistake can be made as to the particular nature of the decoration, and
consequently of the number of years to which the lady is entitled. Each of the
numerous decorations differs entirely from the others. A decoration called the
"Matterode," consists of the model of a very beautiful bird, that has
the peculiarity of always looking upwards, as though its thoughts were borne to
the celestial stars. The wings of this bird,--from which the Order derives its
name,--are fixed in a peculiar way, and move in graceful motion, so as to
suggest the movement of an angel's wings.
The
plumage of the Matterode is as though it were studded with precious stones; so
bright are the dots all over the body and the wings.
The
decoration is of exquisite workmanship, and made of our choicest metals, varied
in colour, and set with precious stones, to imitate the bird's plumage.
This
decoration is presented to a lady who, having by her conduct and years earned
successive decorations, has passed the last five years unexceptionally and
uprightly in all things, and has, besides, shown intelligence of a high grade.
If,
during the five years succeeding that in which she won the
"Matterode," this lady remains unaltered in greatness and goodness,
she is entitled, in addition, to a decoration of considerable value, in which
the "Mountain Supporter"--which gives its name to the Order, is
faithfully copied in the purest and most beautiful metals. And as the
"Matterode" is an intimation that the beauty of the wearer's actions
justifies her in looking upwards to a future home in the celestial stars, so
does the Mountain Supporter indicate her firmness, power, and strength, that
nothing in Montalluyah can surpass.
When
either of these decorations is worn, the greatest honour and respect are paid
to the wearer. All know that none can possess it without having gained it by
sterling merit and goodness of the highest order. The checks used in our system
are of such a nature, that no favouritism, no accident--nothing but the
wearer's years and conduct-- can obtain this, or indeed any other Order.
If
the conduct of the woman during the five years she wears the Matterode had been
marked by any deviation from goodness, an occurrence scarcely heard of, a
qualified decoration would be presented to her, which, though beautiful, and
indicating the age and position beyond doubt, would give evidence that a little
cloud had sometime during the past period, affected the vivid colours of the
illumined sky! There are various ways of modifying the Order so as to show the
estimate of conduct, all differing according to the degree of the offence. But if
the wearer's conduct during the five years of the qualified term is
unexceptionable, the decoration for the subsequent five years would be the same
as though nothing had occurred in the meantime to interrupt the lady's title to
the highest decoration.
Again,
if any person, even one who had gained the Matterode, were to commit
something--a decidedly wrongful act--the decoration, during the following five
years, would perhaps consist of a Foot trampling on a hippopotamus or on a
serpent, thus indicating the necessity for bearing down sin, which is
symbolised by both of these creatures.
You
will at once see how easily the two first decorations I have named are
distinguishable from each other, and how the last is distinguishable from both;
and so it is with all the others, too numerous to mention here.
However,
by their education, and the laws and customs I introduced, Woman possesses so
high a sentiment of honour, and so much becoming pride, that the instances of
degradation from the two first orders has been remarkably rare--scarcely worth
referring to except to show that we never hesitate to put the laws in force
against the highest personages, even in those cases where, under another
system, our sympathies might have led us, perhaps unconsciously, to screen the
offenders. In my laws on this subject, it is declared, that whilst mercy and
goodness are on one side, might and justice are no less on the other side of
the celestial throne.
What
I have said of these orders is applicable in a great degree to all the others.
In
our world all particulars of conduct and goodness, as well as deviations from
them, are known; nothing on these heads is, or indeed can be concealed. I am
now speaking of an advanced period of my reign; for at first, and in what I may
call the intermediate or transition period, it was otherwise. Then there were
many laws and precepts established which are now all but obsolete,--for since,
the occasion for appealing to them scarcely arises. As an example, the love and
practice of truth are amongst the very first things inculcated in the child,
and are now everywhere and by all classes practised in Montalluyah. Laws, then,
which suppose the possibility of a deviation from truth are scarcely ever
appealed to--such as, for instance, the precept, "Ask not your neighbour
what you know he wishes to conceal, lest he lie," and the accompanying law
preventing one person from annoying another with improper questions, and thus
probably drawing forth untruths. These, like the laws and precepts enjoining
all to industry, and many others, belong to a bygone age, and to another state
of things, and were only needed in the intermediate epoch, just as particular
remedies were then required to cure the diseases of those who, having been born
before my reign, had in their childhood and youth been weakened by disease, or
had received into their systems the germs of future intense suffering, which,
had the child been born later, would have been completely eradicated in their
incipiency. But as these maladies existed in the intermediate epoch in their
virulence, we were for a time obliged to continue the principle formerly
adopted,--that of expelling one poison by administering another.
The
fact that everything belonging to women is now known and adequately recognised
and rewarded makes them contented and happy. Under the system existing before
my reign this was not so,--the most beautiful were often the most discontented;
they were more easily acted upon by evil spirits, who assumed the fairest and
most seductive appearances to lure their victims; they were often the most
susceptible to flattery, and easiest led astray; and when once drawn from the
proper path, they were the most cruelly persecuted by a class of inferior
persons, who, had their own secret conduct been known to man as it is to a
superior order of beings, would never have dared to throw even the smallest
stone at their poor persecuted sister, who had, as was often the case, been led
astray by the very excess of a virtue which defective education had left unbalanced
by its regulating qualities.
Although
it was one of the best known precepts of our religion that the fold should
always be open to receive the strayed sheep, these piety-professors, with this
precept on their lips, took care that the strayed ones should be cruelly
worried and scared from the fold.
This,
however, is not surprising when it is recollected that those who were
themselves most impure were ordinarily the first to vilify and persecute the
offending one. From tests, the accuracy of which left no doubt, I learned that
this acrimonious bitterness against their suffering sisters was nearly always
instigated by a desire to conceal their own defects, to raise themselves, as
they thought, by depreciating others, and to lay hypocritical claim to a superior
austerity and goodness which was not theirs. The really pure--and for the
honour of the past age of Montalluyah, I must say there were some few who were
truly good--were those only from whom the sinner received sympathy and
encouragement to return to the path which had been for a time forsaken.
Even
she who receives a qualified or indifferent age-decoration can, if she pleases,
bring her case before the kings, and strict justice is invariably done to all.
None rebel in word or spirit, but all invariably use their efforts to recover
lost ground before the time arrives for receiving the next decoration. In these
laudable efforts they are assisted; all means being used to cure the patient.
When, from tests ofttimes repeated, we are satisfied that the penitent's reform
is complete, she is received with open arms by the highest of her rank, as
though she had been ever spotless; and at any time to remind her of the past,
or even to make to another the slightest allusion to what had occurred, would
be looked upon as a heinous offence, and punished accordingly. Thus, a
qualified order acts at the same time as a censure and a protection.
ADVOCATES.
I
ought to mention that there are advocates selected by the State from amongst
the most eloquent and able men, charged specially to bring before the proper
tribunals every case where any persons, men or women, think themselves wronged.
There are also able men, advocates to represent the interests of society. The
former, or people's advocate, if he thinks right, advises his client by the
gentlest means to desist from her cause; but if his efforts prove ineffectual,
which seldom happens if he is right, he is bound to proceed with the case, and
if necessary to bring the question before the kings. Did there prove to be any
real doubt or serious difficulty, the case would be referred even to me. The
advocates of society, like the people's advocates, are disciplined in the
practice of truth and justice, and if they think that there is anything in the
case in favour of the appellant they are honourably bound to state it to the
tribunal. This is done in the interest both of justice and of society itself,
which might otherwise be injured in the person of one of its members.
Both
classes of advocates occupy very high positions, and would not condescend to
take fees of their clients. They are wholly remunerated by the State. They have
no interest in the issue, and are equally honoured whatever the result may be,
for society always gains by a just decision.
* *
* * *
I
may here mention a privilege belonging to every woman of every rank and of
every age, viz., that, when a man meets a woman in the street, he is expected
to bow, and, unless accompanied by a lady, he must step off the principal path
till she has passed. Any one omitting either of these marks of respect would be
considered vulgar and ill-bred. He would be severely censured, and a repetition
of the offence would render him amenable to more decided punishment.
XXXI.
BEAUTY.
HEALTH--LONG
LIFE--INFANTS.
"A
precious gift from Heaven."
"How
rare is beauty!" was formerly a common exclamation in Montalluyah. It was
rare indeed; for although children were generally handsome and well formed, the
adult too often became misshapen and ill-favoured. Deformity was the rule,
beauty the exception.
Even
amongst those who were called handsome there were scarcely any who fulfilled
every condition of the beautiful. A critical observer would have found defects
in the beauty of the features, in the form, in the foot, the leg, the arm, the
hand, the fingers, the teeth, the neck, the throat, the head, the hair, the
complexion, the contour, the carriage. One, and generally more, of the many
essentials constituting the perfection of beauty would be wanting.
Hence,
when our great artists required an ideal of beauty in painting or in sculpture,
they would take several models, each supplying some beautiful detail not to be
found in the rest,--one model furnishing the features, another the general
outline, each a separate limb. So difficult, if not impossible, was it then to
find perfection of detail in the same person. Nay, even this expedient did not
ensure success; the models differing from each other in size, complexion, and
general proportions, complete harmony was rarely obtained, and, judging from our
old painting and sculpture, I should say that no ideal was then produced equal
to that which in Montalluyah now exists in the living form. Beauty, formerly
the exception, now constitutes the rule, the ill favoured and deformed being
more rare than were the handsome in preceding reigns.
To
beauty is now added longevity; for, as I have before stated, the duration of
human life is extended to a period which formerly would have been thought
fabulous. This assertion will probably be received by you with an incredulity,
which will not be diminished when I add that, notwithstanding the great
increase in man's years, all his faculties are preserved in a state scarcely
less perfect than that of pristine manhood. The eye is not dimmed, there is no
deafness, the limbs are strong and agile, the teeth remain free from decay,
pleasing to the sight, and valuable for the chief purposes for which they were
given. In a word, whatever can contribute to beauty and health in man and woman
remains all but intact to the last. Decadence in any particular, if so it may
be called, is scarcely less marked than is the almost imperceptible decline by
which man descends, or rather ascends, peacefully to another state of
existence.
The
facts I state would appear less extraordinary, nay, they would be regarded as
the natural and inevitable result of an actual state of things, if you knew all
that is done and prevented in Montalluyah to protect the health, strength,
beauty, and intelligence of the child from its birth, indeed prior to its
birth; for with us the care of the mother precedes that of the child. Nor is
our care confined to infancy; it is extended to later years, and does not cease
until the limbs, both of male and female youth, are developed, and their joints
well knitted; until their features and person have received the impress of
beauty, and their intelligence is matured to the healthful extent required by
nature.
You
should also be conversant with the means that are taken to secure the health of
the city, the purity of the water and air, and the wholesomeness of food, the
extreme cleanliness, and the general precautions taken for the prevention of
disease, and of that prostration and waste of vital force by which disease is
preceded, accompanied, and followed. You should realise, in thought at least,
the blessed results of the employment of all in congenial occupations, and the
contentment of each with his lot! You should also be able to realise the
ever-multiplying inventions and discoveries resulting from our system, all
tending to promote human perfectibility and happiness, every successive step
being assisted by the one preceding, as well as by innumerable co-operations,
all tending to one grand result.
You
should also bear in mind that these inventions and their resulting forces had
originated with and were governed by none but natures prone to good; powerful
men from whose organization early education had eliminated the germs of evil
propensities.
You
should also realise the advantages arising from the fact, that whilst elevating
knowledge, and rendering the rich happy in the possession of their wealth, my
laws protect those who formerly would have been called poor. As there is no
misery resulting from the neglect of society, or from the selfishness or
oppression of man, poverty in your sense of the word does not exist. They, who
are qualified for a "poor" grade only, are nevertheless the objects
of solicitude and care to so great an extent that, whilst under my system the
happiness and enjoyments of the rich are greatly increased, the poor are far
happier and have keener enjoyments than the rich of former times, when the
acquisition of money or its indifferent expenditure was the dominant thought in
the minds of all.
You should
also appreciate, in part at least, the effects of the numberless sights of
beauty everywhere in Montalluyah, within and without, in the houses and the
public thoroughfares, all by their influence on the mother, the child, and the
adult contributing towards perfection of form, beauty, intelligence, and length
of life.
Amongst
other things, one result of the labours of the Character-divers must not be
forgotten. The mobile countenances of our people are easily impressed with the
marks of their emotions, and formerly nothing was more plainly furrowed on the
countenance than signs indicating bad passions and evil propensities, the
eradication of which with the development of good qualities (one of the
principal duties of the Character-divers) has had a remarkable effect in adding
to loveliness of expression, in improving the features, and even in increasing
the elegance and gracefulness of the form and bearing.
Had
I been content with a mere ordinary increase of beneficial results, any one or
more of the numerous precautions taken would have done much good; but my object
was to establish my laws on so broad a foundation that no adverse gale could
shake the edifice,--that the laws should be strengthened one by the other, that
every one should be interested in observing and supporting institutions under
which he enjoyed the largest amount of happiness, and that, strange and
visionary as it may seem to you, the necessity for punishment might be
diminished, and eventually removed.
I
should have as little thought of erecting the tall and graceful but huge
Mountain Supporter without a broad and solid foundation as of establishing my
laws, all tending as they did to the perfectibility and happiness of the
people, without spreading their base in all directions, and taking care that
the human instrument through which the soul acts was fortified and prepared to
respond to its noble ends.
I
had early perceived that to obtain the desired end, every particular must be
studied and provided for, so that all elements of enduring success should be
united, and all obstructive elements removed. I felt that no effort, care, or
thought would be too great if it would only produce the desired results, by
securing health, beauty, intelligence, and long life in man, to the utmost extent
that nature permitted.
I
felt that the boon of long life would greatly lose its value, even if it could
have been otherwise obtained, unless man's forces were economized, and the
senses and faculties preserved in health and vigour to the last; that without
these the happiness of man in every stage, and even his obedience to my laws,
and my power to dispense with punishments, would be greatly impaired. For I had
observed that the sufferings and degeneracy of the man would make him
discontented, restless, and miserable, notwithstanding the blessings with which
Providence had surrounded him.
Discontented
men--and discontent and wickedness are not far apart--would have used the new
powers for their own wicked purposes, just as formerly they rent the veil that concealed
from the uninitiated the secrets of powers in nature; having been admitted
under the guise, or rather while in temporary possession of all the great
qualities of will, undaunted courage, energy, and perseverance.
Had
I not reflected on this danger, I should only have allowed numbers of persons
to receive an education which, neglecting the paramount principle of
eradicating the faults of men of talent, would have laid them open to the
promptings of evil spirits, by whom, perhaps, under the guise of beneficence,
they would have been led to use the powers of good for purposes of evil. Our
very progress would have given strength to powerful bad men, and my system, in
spite of improvements, would have carried within it the cause for its own
eventual destruction.
Many
beautiful systems had been tried in Montalluyah, but, from inattention to small
details, they had perished. The men who used for evil purpose powers given them
for good, have unknowingly laboured to their own destruction and that of the
highly civilized communities where they dwelt; which have thus been swept from
the face of the earth.
They
had tasted the fruits of the Tree of Knowledge before they had been thoroughly
disciplined in the powers of resistance and of self-denial. Hence the wholesome
food was changed to poison; the sweet waters were made bitter; the stream,
which in its fullness bore fertility and refreshment, burst its banks, and
carried destruction everywhere.
So
was it even with the priests of one of our ancient religions, who had the
custody of great secrets intended for good. During a time extending over some
generations, they practised the virtues they inculcated, and used their power
for a beneficial end. They increased their power by their virtue and goodness;
but their successors, from whose natures the minute germs of physical and
mental perversity had not been removed, used their increased might for evil
purposes, enervating to the governing will, and to the directing powers
necessary to guide an irresistible force.
It is
known that the results of every act, whether good or evil, will be felt for all
time. The result of evil was likened in Montalluyah to a virulent disease,
which had its beginning in a minute germ; a good act to an ear of nourishing
corn, that goes on propagating till it has supplied nations with food.
It
was not enough that my laws worked with the beauty, regularity, and unity of a
well-balanced machine, the parts of which assisted each other in attaining the
immediate object of its construction. The political and social machine
possessed also the faculty of acquiring at every movement increased powers of
production.
I
had satisfied myself that amongst the numerous precautions to be taken to
secure the highest degree of beauty, power, and intelligence in adults, on
which so much depended, was the care of the infant, and that this should
commence from the earliest period, before the features, form, and organization
had received the first approaches of enduring outline, since then all would be
in a malleable or plastic state, ready to take any impressions caused by
accident or design, whether tending to good or evil, to beauty or deformity.
RIDICULE
ATTACHING TO THE SUBJECT OF BABIES.
Before
my reign eminent men, statesmen, legislators, and philosophers, scarcely condescended
to notice such "trifles" as were comprised in the nurture and care of
infants. Perhaps in a worldly sense they were right, for those who had
attempted to instruct others in these all-pregnant "trifles" had been
invariably ridiculed for the interest they took in "babies," and
such-like "trivialities," which, in spite of many lessons, the people
would not regard as possibly prolific of serious results.
The
contempt thus thrown even on eminent men was the more extraordinary, inasmuch
as our sages had familiarized the people with the grand truth that the greatest
effects are often produced by trifling causes; that out of the little egg came
the large eagle of the country, and the huge boa-constrictor; that innumerable
mighty operations in nature have their origin in small beginnings; that the
narrow rivulet goes on gathering strength till it becomes the Great Cataract;
that the minute plague-spot generated the virulent disease; that the acorn
produces the oak; that the impaired seed failed to produce goodly fruit; that a
small drop of leaven affected a huge mass. Lessons on the fecundity of little
things had indeed grown into commonplace household words.
Besides
these lessons of the wise, love and respect for children were mingled with the
religions feelings of the people; for Elikoia, the founder of our earliest
civilization, was a child when he led the people from idolatry to the worship
of the living God.
All
these considerations, however, were insufficient to shield great men from the
contempt thrown on them and on their words, when they had the courage to let it
be known that they occupied themselves with things which, to an ordinary
observer, seemed beneath notice.
From
the first, however, I had been convinced of the importance of the despised
"little" things, and looked not so much to the dimensions of the
instrument as to the amount of good or evil it was capable of effecting, having
learned by experience that the magnitude of results was often in an inverse
ratio to the means employed, more especially when applied in due season.
Soon
I discovered that many of the maladies incident to children, to youth, and to
adults, owed their origin to the neglect and injudicious treatment of the
infant. I had seen numbers of interesting children, with handsome features and
well-formed limbs, who in their riper years had become ugly, with ill-favoured
features, sallow complexions, bad expressions of countenance, misshapen forms,
and crooked limbs. Many who in early years had displayed great intelligence had
become positively stupid. It was not that the intelligence had been prematurely
developed, but that the organization had been prematurely injured, and the
brain-machine rendered incapable of giving proper expression to the yearnings
of the soul. None suffered more keenly from early physical neglect than
children of genius.
Satisfied
that my observations were accurate, and that everything contributing to husband
the health, strength, beauty, and intelligence of the child, would likewise
contribute to the beauty, happiness, and contentment of the adult, as well as
his obedience to my laws, I resolved to occupy myself with what proved to be
the very important subject of babies. In meditating on the mode of obtaining
the desired results, I considered nothing too insignificant,--not even so
"small" a thing as the scratch of a pin, sufficient at all events to
make an infant cry. The acts of crying and making wry faces disturb the lines
of the plastic clay of the child's countenance, and even the lines of the form.
The state of suffering calls off the vital electricity from its duties in other
parts of the organisation, and is attended with other inconveniences, slight
indeed in immediate perceptible effects, but so powerful in their cumulative
and germinating effects as to lead to results which, were they related, would
seem incredible.
I
must content myself by saying, that although the march of these cumulative
effects is not one-tenth as visible as the almost imperceptible movement of the
hand that marks the seconds in one of our smallest electrical watches, they
nevertheless eventually show in their result great and increasing evils,
seriously affecting the child, the youth, the adult, and the man. It would not
be too much to say that the traces of an injury, however slight, are never
altogether obliterated, whilst every successive injury and deprivation of force
renders the sufferer more open to every new inroad.
Although
the minute hand of our electric watches moves almost imperceptibly, marking
minutes, hours, days, and years, it advances in measured, limited progression;
whereas the effects of suffering on the child go on advancing in an
increasing--nay, multiplying--ratio, by which, up to a certain point, that of
geometrical progression is far exceeded. If you can realise the fact, which in
Montalluyah is incontestable, that even a scratch, however slight, will injure
a child, it will require little stretch of imagination to form some conception
at least of the injury caused to the beauty, form, health, strength, and mind
of the adult, by the many diseases and sufferings which were allowed to leave
their imprints on the young, impressionable clay and delicate organisation of
the infant. Our children were formerly afflicted, like yours, with diseases
resembling whooping-cough, croup, measles, small-pox, and other maladies,
forming an almost endless list, and although the child survived the attacks and
the incidental suffering and waste, the evil consequences could never be
effectually removed.
The
precautions now taken are very numerous. Many by themselves alone would be
productive of great good, but when all are carried out, some contemporaneously,
others successively, a result is scarcely less certain than the solution of a
mathematical problem, based on accurate premises, save of course in the case of
inevitable accidents. My laws provide for the protection of the child from its
birth, nay, as I have before stated, prior to its birth; for the protection of
the parent precedes that of the child. I knew that if the mother was sickly, or
indulged in injurious habits, the child would suffer. I enjoined attention to
these laws as a portion of the religious duties of the people. Amongst other
things I explained the value of beauty in the human form, and how, when united
with other qualities, it tended to the happiness of the individual and the
well-being of the world. This I did at length, and in a manner to secure
conviction, because it had been the fashion to decry beauty as a matter of
minor importance.
At
the risk of repeating myself, I assert that I omitted nothing, however
seemingly insignificant, looking as I did upon my system as upon one large
continuous volume, in which every page had its value. The absence of a single
leaf would somewhat mar the general effect, but still the remaining pages might
retain their worth if pregnant with good. On the other hand, if every leaf that
was torn out had the effect of loosening the rest, and causing them to be lost,
till but a few would be left in the cover, the effect would be far more
serious.
XXXII.
INFANTS'
EXERCISE-MACHINES.
"Does
a man throw his precious pearls and diamonds into the sea?"
"Why,
then, do ye cast the priceless health and beauty of your children to the
winds?"
I
cannot undertake to relate at present one tithe of the precautions taken in the
care of infants. Did I venture so to do I should have to "descend" to
the minutest particulars, such as the dispensing with "pins," and the
making the baby's dress in one piece, the nursing, and form of the cradle, to
the mode in which the baby is to be placed at the side of the mother, to
prevent its being overlaid or injured,-- everything, in fact, which in
Montalluyah is thought essential to protect infants and save them from
unnecessary suffering, in order that their young strength may be husbanded for
the future requirements of the man.
To
give you some notion, however, of the minutiae to which our care extended, I
will explain to you one series of precautions which has great influence on the
child's health, beauty, and intelligence.
Young
children formerly suffered greatly from fits and various diseases, caused by
the want of healthy circulation. When more advanced, and whilst learning to
walk, they were subject to falls. This was amongst the most serious evils of
early neglect, for it was demonstrated beyond doubt that accidents to the
infant, prominent amongst which were blows received on its head, not only
affected its after-growth, and laid the foundation of nervous and other
disorders, but were often attended with the sadder result, that the child's
intellect was impaired. Nevertheless, so little was this danger apprehended,
that many people long indulged in the foolish habit of boxing children's ears,
unaware that the shock produced on the nerves of the head, which are the
conduits of electricity, often made a child stupid, if, indeed, the effects of
this brutal practice were not in after-life attended by more serious
consequences. In learning to walk, also, the weight of the child's body, pressing
on the legs too heavily, has a tendency to make them crooked or bent, and to
affect other parts of the body.
To
obviate these evils, a man named Drahna invented, at my suggestion, certain
mechanical contrivances, which were so efficacious, and prevented so much
suffering, that his name will never be forgotten as one of the great
benefactors of our world.
These
contrivances are respectively adapted to the infant when it cannot sit up, when
it can sit up, when it has acquired strength beyond the second stage, and,
lastly, when the limbs have acquired sufficient strength to support the
increased weight of the body.
The
contrivance, in the first stage, is calculated to give the infant healthful
exercise, circulate the blood, and, at the same time to protect him from
injury. It consists of a soft spring-cushion, on which the baby is laid; two
little elastic bands on this cushion secure the arms, whilst other bands secure
the head, ankles, and waist. By turning a small handle the machine is very
gently set in motion, but by pressing down a knob its velocity may be increased
at will. So agreeable is the action of the machine, that when the motion is
altogether stopped the child will often cry, or rather coo, that the movement
may be repeated.
For
the second stage, the instrument is similar to the first, but larger and
stronger.
The
third stage is adapted to the time when it is judicious to begin to teach the
child to walk. The legs, and, indeed, every part of the body, are supported by
the instrument, which cannot be overturned. When this is put into motion, the
child's left leg is first moved, then the right, and so on alternately. A
perfect idea of walking, with the necessary movement of the joints, is thus
given to the child, without the slightest strain on its limbs, as yet unfitted
to bear the weight of its own body. The machine continues in motion for a time
sufficient to exercise without causing fatigue.
As
soon as the child has acquired the knowledge of the motion, and his limbs are
strong enough to support the weight of the body without injury, these machines
are put aside, and the fourth contrivance is used. In this, the mechanism
consists of a framework with very light and soft bandages, made with the
plumage and down of birds. With these bandages the child's head, knees, elbows,
wrists, shoulders, and loins are gently bound. The framework to which the
bandages are attached has a projection from every point, on which the child, in
case of accident, can possibly fall, and he is thus effectually protected; for,
as the projection allows of his falling only slightly out of the perpendicular,
the concussion is but slight, and the young one is only pressed gently on the
soft down.
As
the child increases in strength, the projections are removed at intervals, one
by one, commencing with those corresponding to the knees, the last removed
being those protecting the head, which are retained for a long time. Even when
they have been removed, the head is still guarded by a light turban with inside
springs, made so as to yield gently to a blow, and thus save the head; so
important is it considered to protect this superior portion of the human frame.
When
the bandages are first removed from the knees, the child has perhaps some
falls; but these, the head and other parts being protected, are not attended
with any serious consequences; and if the child actually falls, the sensation
of pain he may experience may teach him to be more careful in future. Such
lessons would, indeed, be valuable at all times; but they would be purchased at
too great a cost if learned at the price of injury to body and mind.
The
use of these four instruments was followed by remarkable results; and they are
thought of such great value to the community that the districts supply them
gratuitously to the poor. Those thus charitably bestowed are less ornamental
than the others, but equally efficient.
THE
TEETH.
The
teeth are also subjects of great care, and the infant is spared all pain in
cutting them. When the teething-time is near, and before the pains attending it
have even commenced, the child's gums are rubbed night and morning with a bulb
or root so softening and relaxing in its effects, that after a short time the
teeth make their way through the gums with perfect ease. When the teeth are too
numerous the redundant ones are extracted, without causing the patient the
slightest pain. A hot solution of the same bulb is applied to the portion of
the gum which encloses the tooth to be extracted; causing the gum to separate
from the roots of the tooth, which is then removed with perfect ease. None are
extracted after the last have appeared, for decay is effectually prevented. In
seeking remedies for the maladies of those who were born before my laws came
into operation, the immediate cause of decay was discovered; but we did not
rest until we had detected the remote cause and the means of preventing the
evil.
By
the aid of the microscope and other scientific appliances the discovery was
soon made that decay in teeth is produced by a minute worm resulting from the
absence of the proper electricity, necessary for preserving in the tooth a
healthy action. When this electricity is deficient, the circulation in the bone
becomes sluggish, the fatty matters stagnate, and through the warmth of the gum
acting on the stagnant accumulation, a single worm is generated.
Though
we had discovered the existence of the worm and the cause of its being bred,
some time elapsed before we were able to discover whether the necessary
electricity was wanting, and, by supplying the deficiency, to prevent the
generation of the worm. At length a professor, by name Jerronska, invented an
ingenious little instrument, of a form corresponding to the upper and lower
jaw, and furnished above and below with small points or minute spikes; the instrument
in a contracted shape is introduced into the mouth and is there expanded to
correspond to the form of the jaws. It is charged with an electricity that can
escape through the spikes only, and is opposed to the electricity of the teeth,
which if healthy will cause a slight shock to the patient, without any other
inconvenience. On the other hand, if any of the teeth do not contain the proper
kind or quantity of electricity, they will turn to a colour like fire, leaving
the healthy teeth untouched; for the instrument affects those teeth alone whose
electricity is defective.
We
have then the means of impregnating the unhealthy teeth with the proper
electricity, and thus destroying the incipient ovum, which cannot live in an
electricity healthful to the tooth.
In
like manner, minute precautions are taken to preserve the beauty and power of
the eye. Formerly, in consequence of the intensity of light in Montalluyah, and
through other causes, the sight suffered severely.
Our
physicians also found out the means of tracing and removing the germs of
defects in the ear, the nostrils, the tongue--in short, everything that, if
neglected, might impair the adult's energies and beauty.
Great
attention is paid to the quality of the air in which children are bred, for air
affects both the blood and the nerves. Its effect on the blood was long known,
through the fact that air is one of its important ingredients; but its effect
on the nerves was first demonstrated by observing that nerves taken from a
person recently dead shrivel and contract in a vitiated atmosphere, and revive
and expand when brought into the open air.
The
proper mode of rooting out incipient evils is thoroughly understood in
Montalluyah, there being eminent men, who make each division and subdivision of
various sciences their sole study and occupation. The sight, for instance, is a
great subject of study, and affords a striking instance of our subdivision; for
although there are scientific men who have a general knowledge of the eye and
of the human system, these make particular subdivisions of the subject their
peculiar study and sole occupation. Thus, one great subdivision is the
"Bile of the Eye;" another is the "Moisture of the Eye;"
another the "Concentrated Light of the Eye;" another "The
Relations of the Eye to the rest of the System," and so forth.
To
resume: these matters, and, indeed, many more, receive effectual attention from
the moment when the child is born. Every good attained goes on increasing under
direct and collateral influences, until by a prolific and cumulative process,
extraordinary and beneficial results are obtained in lieu of the evils that
would otherwise have arisen. In short, to understand fully the extent of the
good achieved, one must have been, as I was, a witness of the means and their
effects--of the marvellous consequences of our attention to "little
things."
XXXIII.
GYMNASTICS.
"Let
your statue be beautiful, but neglect not the pedestal, lest with every adverse
wind it receive a shock."
Our
care of the future man is not, as I have said, confined to his infancy, but is
extended to all the critical periods of life. The proper development of the
frame and of manly qualities is looked upon as an essential part of the boy's
education, and much of the strength, beauty, and longevity of the people is due
to the physical training of the student.
Formerly
little discrimination was used in the selection of bodily as of mental
exercises; the same exercises being allotted to the brave and the timid, the
weak and the strong boy.
Now,
on the other hand, the exercise is adapted to the boy's strength and physical
organization, which often differ as much as his genius from that of his
companions. Exercises beneficial to one constitution are prejudicial to
another, and would, perhaps, develop a part of the body already having a
tendency to exaggeration.
Thus
a youth inclined to be tall and lanky, or whose limbs are disposed to be too
long for symmetry, is not allowed the same exercises as those of a youth with
short limbs or inclined to be corpulent.
We
have numerous gymnastic exercises. Some parts of our apparatus are much like
yours, as, for instance, a cross-bar, on which the boy swings, holding on with
his hands.
In
the case just mentioned a tall, thin, long-limbed boy would not be permitted to
use this bar; whilst a boy with short limbs and inclined to corpulency would be
encouraged to use it daily.
A
medical man attached to the college attends on the gymnastic ground to observe
the efforts each boy is obliged to make in performing his exercises. When the
exercises are ended, the doctor examines the boy's pulse, and, with the aid of
an instrument invented for the purpose, tests the heat of his brain. The boy
with whom the exercises agree will show a healthy heat and a strong, full pulse;
whilst others will have the brain extremely hot, with the pulse very quick, but
feeble. The doctor having formed his opinion, orders that these boys should
discontinue the exercises antagonistic to their system, and they are led to
those more adapted to their capabilities. The weaker boys are also often
separated from the stronger, to prevent that overstraining to which a weak but
high-spirited lad is frequently impelled by the emulation of example.
In
the allotment of exercises our aim is to develop thoroughly the muscles, and to
give a regular and general action to all the members, but not to overstrain
them. The power of each boy being thus carefully remarked and regulated
accordingly, all gather strength rapidly, and most are soon able to resume the
exercises for a time abandoned. Indeed, by the precautions taken and the
exercises selected, the body is fortified and rendered so firm, that in after
years it will bear very great fatigue without sustaining injury.
BATHING
IN THE SEA.
As
already mentioned, ablutions are in great favour in Montalluyah, and bathing is
in constant use. At a certain period of the year--about six weeks in the
whole--our boys are made to bathe every morning in the open sea, into which
they are taught to leap from adjacent rocks. Having been told off according to
their strength and capabilities, they are gradually led to higher and higher
rocks, till at length they become accustomed to jump from a vast height with
ease and without fear, and thus to dive in the sea.
When
there is a timid boy, six or seven of the bravest are selected to accompany
him. They are directed on no account to urge him to jump off the rocks, or to
taunt him for not doing so, but to let him act as he pleases. If he does not
imitate their example by jumping off the rock, the overlooker who has the care
of the party will say, "As you have not bathed from the rock, you had
better bathe below;" and the boy is then sent to bathe with the younger
ones from the beach. Ere long, of his own accord, he becomes desirous to imitate
the braver boys of his own age; though I have known twelve or more mornings to
elapse before the higher leap has been attempted.
When
at last the boy has resolved to jump from the rock, great care is taken neither
to praise him too much nor to reproach him with awkwardness. On his return to
the school, he is examined by the doctor, to see if his nerves have received
too great a shock, and directions are given accordingly. After a time all
traces of timidity vanish, and numbers of children have thus been cured of
their first aversion to jump from great heights into the sea.
No
boy is allowed, under any circumstances, to taunt another with any weakness or
failing; and, consequently, the boy himself scarcely knows that it is fear
which has prevented him from doing the same thing as his companions.
Every
day throughout the year the boys are required to take a bath either in the sea
or at the institution, unless the doctor orders the contrary.
Besides
the consideration of cleanliness and its effect on the complexion and health,
the water used contains iron, which in our climate is of itself very beneficial
to the system.
TREE-EARTH
BATHS.
Where
a boy's aversion to study arises from physical weakness, we do not urge him to
persevere any more than we urge him against his inclination to leap from a high
rock; but, on the contrary, when a boy's bodily strength fails him, and more
especially in a case of superior intelligence, his studies are suspended until
the weakness is remedied. Were the boy forced to persevere, he would probably
suffer both in body and mind. He is merely placed in a separate department of
the college--a kind of infirmary for strengthening the young, and promoting
their healthy development.
For
giving the desired strength we most commonly employ "Tree-earth
Baths,"--that is to say, baths of fresh earth taken from beneath the roots
of certain trees, in which the boy is as it were buried, every part of his body
being covered, with the exception of his head. This earth bath is placed in
another bath containing hot water. The effect of this operation in renewing the
boy's strength and repairing the waste of his body is marvellous.
When
removed from the bath the boy is washed with tepid water, mixed with a solution
of bark, and on the following day a cold douche is administered. The
bath, in which the boy is kept for about an hour, is administered at intervals
of about ten days, and is so efficacious that not more than twelve are required
for the worst cases.
Previously
to being immersed the boy is made to walk sharply for half an hour, and, while
he is in the bath, warm liquid food is administered. The pores being opened
facilitate the reception of the fresh exhalations from the earth and the
expulsion of the impure gases from the body. The boy often sleeps whilst thus
immersed, as it is considered highly beneficial to inhale the fresh fragrance
of the earth.
The
electricities proper to the earth and trees being very sympathetic to the human
frame, they readily mingle with the electricity of the patient and assist in
repelling the unhealthy gases and impurities in his body.
Earth
electricity is of itself most beneficial, but its curative and invigorating
effects are vastly increased when impregnated with tree electricity, which is
strongest about the roots.
There
are men whose sole occupation it is to collect the tree-earth, and who become
skilful in digging and removing the soil from underneath the roots, without in
the slightest degree injuring the tree.
The
earth under many trees is good for the purpose above described, but that about
the roots of the oak, especially when of a ripe middle age, is exceptionally
efficacious.
The
roots of another tree that you have, viz., the weeping willow, offers a good
earth for girls and also for boys of a susceptible nature, for whom the
oak-root earth might be too strong.
The
elm, horse-chestnut, and lime-earths are all more powerful than that of the
oak, and therefore are rarely used, for their exceeding strength would
overpower the natural electricity and leave a lassitude in the patient. The
tree-earth baths are rarely used for adults, except in cases when, earlier in
my reign, the mental powers of several persons had been overtaxed at the
expense of their physical strength.
XXXIV.
THE
AMUSEMENT GALLERY.
"The
simplest electricities are often meet to discover the most precious."
The
Amusement Gallery constitutes an interesting feature in the child's education,
and so admirable have been its results, that the opening of the first
institution of the kind--recorded, as I have said, in one of the great pictures
in my summer palace--is regarded as a memorable event, and is celebrated by the
people in a yearly festival.
In a
very long gallery, attached to each college, is a collection of instructive
toys adapted to all ages and dispositions. Amongst these are harps and other
musical instruments, made on a small scale to suit the capacity of children,
materials for drawing, painting, modelling, and sculpture; maps, in relief, of
cities and other parts of our world, and all kinds of small birds and dwarf
animals. I should not omit to state that we have living horses and deer _in
miniature_: they are about the size of an ordinary lap-dog, though in many
other respects resembling the larger species. These with their little clothes
and harness are placed in the gallery, which likewise contains fresh fruit and
flowers, indeed almost everything that can be imagined for the recreation and
enjoyment of the child.
In
the Girls' Amusement Gallery there are various kinds of fancy-work, lace-work,
and basket-work. Our basket-work is very beautiful, the baskets being elegant
in form and elaborately painted. Indeed, elegance of form and harmony of colour
are studied in all the objects selected.
Boys,
being trained by manly recreations, necessarily have their Amusement Gallery
separate from that of the girls, though many of the more elegant and refined
amusements are to be found in both. The girls attend their gallery, whatever
may be their age, until they leave school. On the other hand, the boy ceases to
attend when the Character divers and Judges think his attendance no longer
desirable.
At
each of the stalls in the gallery is stationed an intelligent person skilled in
some particular art. Of these some play on musical instruments, some paint or
model, others give oral instruction, according to the nature of the compartment
or the wishes of the child.
There
are also "Walkers," who perambulate the gallery, encouraging the
child to amuse herself with what she likes, explaining the use of different
objects, answering the young inquirer's questions, and noting in her any
particular qualities or peculiarities. The results of these observations are
drawn up in the shape of reports for the use of the Judges.
No
restraint is put upon the children when in the gallery, but they are allowed
freely to follow the bent of their own inclinations. I have often observed some
of these little creatures ardent for amusement responding to their own
predilections; others taking interest in frivolous things; others, again,
listless, and interesting themselves in nothing. Whilst many would examine with
breathless attention, others would ask questions, more or less intelligent, of
the persons at the head of each stall.
I
have seen some children with an engrossing taste for painting, music, and
sculpture, who would rush straight to their favourite pursuit, without being
diverted by anything else, and who, if they found the desired place already
taken, would show disappointment, and perhaps refuse any other occupation.
Many, on the other hand, as soon as they entered the gallery, would simply play
with the little animals and birds, or perhaps do nothing but eat fruit till the
last minute, when the bell announced that the time allotted for recreation was
ended.
Some
would do nothing but talk, and, in their simplicity, would find fault with
everything, after the too frequent fashion of adults, either imagining they
could do most things better than the rest, or depreciating pursuits which they
knew were beyond their ability.
Natures
of this kind, where vanity is so predominant, require the greatest care, for
the failing is difficult to eradicate and would, if not cured, be a source of
great unhappiness in after life. To prevent such a result, generally, means are
taken to refine the taste of the patient (if I may use the word), and call out
the quality most opposed to the infirmity, viz., that of looking out for
beauties instead of defects.
I
have seen a little one change her amusements several times during the hour.
When a child, particularly a girl, continues to do this during many weeks, it
is regarded as a sign that if the disposition be not checked she will grow up a
capricious woman, and a treatment is therefore adopted to stop the growth of
the infirmity. Many a girl, who would otherwise have proved a misery to herself
and to others, has, by the precautions taken, become a reasonable and
meritorious woman. However, children of a capricious temperament, even when
seemingly cured, require constant watching during some time, since they are
very prone to return to their old inclination for incessant change.
Versatility,
it should be understood, is not confounded with caprice, the difference between
them being easily detected by the Character divers. I have seen children show a
love for seven or eight different things and go from one thing to another, not
from caprice, but to satisfy the natural yearnings of their genius. I recollect
a girl, and she was but one amongst many, whose versatility was marvellous. One
day music would occupy her, and, although untaught, she would give promise of
becoming a brilliant performer; another day she would commence sculpture, and
at once go readily to work. She first made a ball with the plaster, and then,
on the second or third attempt, she would execute something really well. So was
it with painting and other arts. This love of variety would formerly have been
called caprice, and strenuous efforts would have been made in a wrong direction
to the discouragement, perhaps to the ruin of the pupil; but I acted on a
contrary principle, knowing, as I did, that in giving varied talents Providence
intended that they should be exercised, and that, therefore, it would not be
decorous "to care for one part of the garden, and leave the others
overgrown with weeds." The girl was treated in accordance with this view,
and taking the highest honours and position, became a very remarkable woman.
Judges
are not expected to form an estimate of the child's character until a certain
time has elapsed and the reports of the different officers have been examined
and compared. Their decisions are then registered, to be again examined and
compared with subsequent reports.
The
results obtained through the medium of the Amusement Gallery greatly aids the
Character-divers and others occupied with education, in rightly directing the
child's steps. The imposition of useless tasks, fatiguing to the children and
perhaps injurious to the young intelligence, is thus avoided.
XXXV.
PRAYER.
"Forget
not the source whence all blessings come."
While
stating that the prayers said by girls after their early meal are short, I
ought to have added that the same rule is followed with regard to children of
both sexes.
We
even vary our forms of worship and services to suit different ages. Before my
reign adults and children went to the same places of worship, repeated the same
prayers, and listened to the same discourses, most of which being perfectly
unintelligible to those of tender years, the evils and inconveniences resulting
from the practice were very great. The children, finding the routine irksome,
the constrained decorum required of them during a time which seemed to them
never ending (for the services were then very long) was painful in the extreme,
though they were sometimes relieved by turning their thoughts in other
directions, perhaps to subjects irrelevant if not opposed to the ostensible
object of the meeting.
Thus
pain and weariness became then and in after life naturally associated with the
most sacred of duties, and generally those, who at an early age had been
obliged to attend most regularly to an unintelligible and irksome routine, were
in after life those who absented themselves most frequently from the place of
worship. I have known some, and this will scarcely be credited, who from an
early age had in obedience to their parents' commands attended church with what
was to them painful and monotonous regularity, and who, as soon as they were
old enough to leave the parental jurisdiction, never entered a place of worship
again until the day of their death, so great had been their stifled repugnance,
created by the unnatural surfeit which had been inflicted upon them.
This
was not all: the repugnance thus engendered often extended even to the faith
itself which the prayers and discourses had been intended to inculcate, and led
the way in after life to doubt and disbelief.
There
was another though a secondary evil, attendant upon these old formalities. In
our climate, where children are very susceptible, it happened that when on rare
occasions any striking observation attracted their attention, they would put
questions very difficult for their parents or preceptors to answer.
The
forms of worship and service are now adapted to three several ages and classes
of intelligence. The first series is for children of from seven to ten years of
age, the second for children from ten to sixteen, the third for adults. If the
children, however, show any deficiency of intelligence, they are kept in the
first or second series, though the stated age has been passed.
The
discourses addressed to the young people are adapted to their age and
intelligence, and ordinarily bear reference to their own passing actions, and
consequently to their hours of play and of study. They are intended to
inculcate lessons of self-control, love for parents or associates, contentment,
and the mode of showing gratitude for benefits received, by cultivating the
faculties which God in His goodness has bestowed. The discourse often points
out the mode of contending against any bad feelings that might possibly be
awakened. They might be told, for instance, that if during play any
dissatisfaction with their companions arose, and they felt they could not
control themselves, they ought immediately to retire from the game, in order
that their feelings might have the opportunity of returning to their proper
channel, and on no account to urge anything against the supposed offender until
they had advised with some friendly adult, or more especially a
Character-diver.
The
children are encouraged not only in their affection to their parents and
immediate associates, but in brotherly love to all, and the whole discourse,
which is very short, is pointed to their duty to God, being calculated to
instil feelings of love and adoration for His goodness.
In
the first series, for very young children whose intelligence is undeveloped, we
have forms and ceremonies, the tendency of which is to fix their attention and
inculcate thoughts and habits of a good tendency.
In
the second series the addresses are of a more elevated character, and are
accompanied by fewer forms and ceremonies.
In
the highest series there are scarcely any ceremonies, and although the service
and discourses are short, every one is expected to pass a certain time each day
in voluntary prayer and meditation in the private cabinet which in every house
is set apart for devotion only.
Though
the prayers for children are short, the preacher is greatly assisted by our
method of education, inculcating the worship of the Supreme by habits which the
child is led to form. Thus we require the greatest attention to cleanliness, to
the mode of eating, sleeping, talking, and indeed to all the daily practices of
life.
The
inculcation and exercise of good habits is considered to form, as it were, a
perpetual living hymn to the Creator.
LECTURES.
Besides
all this, twice a week, amusing lectures are delivered, on familiar subjects,
to explain and illustrate the power and goodness of God.
A
flower, for instance, is taken, and, in simple terms, intelligible to nearly
every capacity, attention is called to its thousand fibres, its construction,
growth, perfume, colour, delicacy of texture, loveliness, and to the wonders
associated with its birth, death, and resurrection to life.
Another
day, perhaps, the subject may be a child, a fly, or some other familiar object;
but, whatever be the subject, the discourse is of a good tendency, and youth
are early imbued with love and admiration for the Supreme Being.
Our
objection to children repeating or listening to words which they do not
understand is not confined to those of sacred import. During the education of
their young minds the subjects taught and the expressions used are adapted to
their intelligence. Even though they may repeat every word of the lesson set
with minute accuracy, they are not allowed to quit it, or to attend a lecture
on another subject, until they have passed through examination in different
forms, and often by different masters, and the result has clearly shown that
they thoroughly understand what the words of the lesson are intended to convey.
So
important is this considered that, on the occasion of the public solemn
ceremony, when in presence of the Kings the preceptor is appointed to his
responsible duties, one of the obligations to which he is required to subscribe
is, that he will teach the pupil to understand thoroughly, and not merely by
rote,--"monkey-like," or as you would probably say,
"parrot-like," were the same obligation imposed in your world.
XXXVI.
FLOCKS
AND HERDS.
TREATMENT
OF ANIMALS.
"Why
are the poor hungry?--Why do not your flocks and herds multiply and
increase?--Why do ye maltreat the sire and kill the mother of many
progenies."
"Obey
my Laws, and your flocks will equal in number the drops of water in the great
Cataract, which ever flowing, ever merging in the mighty Ocean, is constantly
supplied with new increase for the refreshment and delight of
Montalluyah."
Amongst
the numerous precautions for the promotion of the general health is the
attention given to the subject of animal food, the care taken of the beast, the
mode of slaughtering, and the rigour with which every beast having the
slightest tendency to disease is rejected as unfit for food.
All
animals, and particularly those intended for food, are now treated with great
kindness, gentle treatment and cleanliness being thought essential to the
excellence of the meat. Formerly, when the beasts were improperly treated, the
growth of the young was impeded and the quality of the meat deteriorated. They
are now watched over with the utmost care, the greatest attention is paid to
the most minute particulars, and so well are they treated, that,
notwithstanding the heat of the climate, they are quite tame. When any one goes
into a field, the sheep and lambs will come round him and lick his hand. Their
pasture is changed every week, for it is found that, when in our climate grass
is eaten too closely, noxious insects are bred by the accumulation of stale
manure. In or near every pasturage are pools of running water, to which the
animals are conducted daily. These are supplied by a very high jet which, when
in action, throws its water from a reservoir to a long distance, which may even
be increased by means of pipes, and thus fertilizes the field. Much of the
water proceeds in the first instance from the cataracts, which begin high above
the level of the meadows. As soon as the animals are turned out, the jet is
made to play on the fields they have quitted. Then the moisture, mingling with
the fresh manure, and our glorious sun enrich the land, and luxuriant grass is
quickly produced.
In
former years diseases prevailed amongst our flocks and herds. We had one
amongst the sheep, not unlike the smallpox of your world. These diseases were
generated partly by the filthiness of the pasturage, and partly by a want of
change, which I believe to be principal causes of many of your cattle diseases.
We now give far more attention to the cleanliness and health of the animal than
in our world was formerly bestowed on the poor.
In
every field is a shady spot, contrived to protect the animals from the sun
during the heat of the day. The ground being very undulating, a shade is
obtained by merely throwing out, from the higher land above, some wood or other
material to serve as a roof.
In
case of illness among the animals, the great remedy used is a particular kind
of electricity, which gives an impulse to the blood and changes the humours.
This, with diet and care, is the only expedient employed to restore the animal
to health. If a female animal is of a sickly nature and likely to give birth to
inferior beasts, she is quietly put out of the way.
THE
MALE ALONE KILLED.
To
the care taken of the beasts is greatly due the perfection of their breed and
to a certain extent their numbers; but the law that contributes most to the
marvellous increase of our flocks and herds is that which forbids the slaughter
of the female. In every species the male only is used for food. If we killed
the mother we should, as it were, kill the progeny that would otherwise be bred
from her, and our immense stocks would not then be a hundredth part as numerous
as they are at present.
The
cow, after she has ceased bearing, is used to carry the women's baskets, or for
very light draughts. The ewe, when she has ceased bearing, is trained to assist
in field and garden operations, to pull up cabbages, carrots, and other
vegetables, being, in short, more useful to us than the dog.
SLAUGHTERING
ANIMALS.
In
killing animals for food all painful processes are avoided. Under the old
system the cruelty with which the animal was treated, and its suffering from
the violence of the death-struggle greatly affected the quality of the meat,
lessened its nutritive powers, and rendered it less digestible, and very often
exciting and injurious. Now, when an animal is to be killed, it is placed in a
large lighted stable, over which is a loft, communicating with it by means of a
grating. In this a man is stationed, who thrusts through the grating a long
stick, baited with a bunch of fresh grass, in the middle of which is contained
a small globule endued with the property of depriving the animal of all
consciousness and sense of feeling. As soon as the beast has eaten the grass,
and consequently swallowed the pill, he staggers and falls; and, before he has
time to recover, the butcher despatches him by cutting his throat and letting out
the blood, whereupon he dies a painless death, without a struggle. Only one
animal is despatched at a time in the same stable, so that one does not see
another killed. There is reason for this precaution.
A
lamb takes the ball of grass from the hand, for it is thus our shepherds
sometimes feed them. Poultry are killed by very small quantities of the
preparation being mixed with their grain; the fowls sometimes take up two or
three grains not impregnated with the material, but as soon as the smallest particle
is swallowed they stagger and fall. It is interesting to see this, the effect
is so instantaneous. The ingredient used does not in any way injure the meat
and is indeed considered beneficial, even to the human system, when
administered in small quantities, since the torpor it causes at the moment is
succeeded by increased vitality and strength.
THE
BLOOD OF ANIMALS.
When
the animal is killed we are very scrupulous in pouring out the blood, which we
avoid using for any purpose connected with food. On every occasion of
the kind "field doctors" are present to see that all due precautions
are taken. They analyse the blood, and if it does not contain the proper
ingredients, the animal is looked upon as diseased, and its flesh rejected as
so far unwholesome; in our climate it would be difficult of digestion, and
produce heaviness, disinclination to study, despondency and other
inconveniences. Blood is said to contain the electricity that, in connection
with the electricity on the nerves, gives action, feeling, pleasure, and pain.
Blood, indeed, contains as it were the material through which the life of the
animal carries on its operations.
PROTECTION
OF THE MEAT FROM INSECTS.
The
animal as soon as killed is cut up into different portions, each of which is
placed for a few minutes in a large vessel containing an infusion of a certain
herb, to which flies and winged insects of all kinds have a great antipathy.
The steeping of the meat into this preparation effectually protects it against
their approach. There are immense numbers of winged insects in our climate, but
none will approach food which has been steeped in an infusion of this herb. By
these and other precautions they are kept within certain limits and driven to
the uses for which nature intended them. It is not necessary to keep the meat
in the vessel for more than a few minutes, nor does the liquid deteriorate the
quality or taste of the meat. Far from being noxious to the human race, the
herb, which is free from smell, contains a healthy bitter, is cooling and
refreshing, and cleanses and preserves the pores of the skin.
Formerly
numbers of persons were affected by the deposits, which, left by flies on meats
and provisions generally, caused irritation of the bowels, diarrhoea, and
vomit, and were otherwise very injurious to the system.
I
may here mention that a preparation of the herb to which I have referred is
used for fruits and provisions generally, which are protected by a light gauze
steeped in an infusion of the herb and thrown loosely over them; though,
indeed, it is only necessary to place the gauze at the side of the provisions
to prevent the approach of the enemy.
This
infusion is also used in our houses, and during repasts; couches, bedding, and
coverings are sprinkled with the liquid. A preparation is also used for the
toilette, in order to protect the head and face from the flies.
CRUELTY
TO ANIMALS.
Cruelty
to an animal, even when not intended for food, entails so much disgrace that it
is an offence of the rarest occurrence. My laws provide various punishments
according to the grade of the offender and the nature of the offence.
If a
common man were really cruel to his horse he would be compelled to draw his
merchandise by hand. If the offence were committed by a man of high position
the punishment would be more severe, and not only would he be treated as though
he were unworthy of exercising power over good animals and consequently
deprived of all his horses, but he would be supplied with a vicious horse,
which, perhaps, he would be obliged to ride along a dangerous path, that he
might thus be made to appreciate the superior gentleness of the one he had
maltreated. If the offence were repeated, he would be degraded from his
position or condemned during a certain period to wear "the dress of shame."
XXXVII.
THE
ALLMANYUKA.
"Improve
Nature's gifts, and with her elements form new compounds....
"Were
man's faculties given that they should slumber?"
Nothing
engaged my attention more than the health of my people. I had satisfied myself
that the most virulent diseases took their development from minute, nay, almost
imperceptible causes.
As I
had determined to find out the germs of faults in children, which, when
neglected, led to confirmed vices in the adult; so I was determined to discover
disease in its incipience, and wherever possible, to remove the exciting cause.
I
have already referred to the creation of a new fruit-vegetable, as one of the
subjects of a series of pictures in my summer palace. I will now relate to you
some facts regarding the production of the fruit, the offspring of my anxiety
for the health of the people.
In
the early part of my reign, before the means had been discovered for detecting
the incipient germs of disease, the people were afflicted by the return of a
painful malady, with which they had often been afflicted before. It was
attended with irritation of the intestines, and carried the sufferer off rapidly;
for, although all the doctors were familiar with the symptoms, none of them had
been able to discover the cause of the disease, or its cure.
I
remarked that the children at the colleges were not attacked by this disease,
and therefore thought that it had probably originated in something used by
adults and not by the young.
The
truth of my hypothesis was soon tested. A person of robust frame, whom I much
esteemed, died suddenly of the malady. I entreated his friends, in the interest
of humanity, to allow his body to be examined.
The
people at this period indulged in the use of sauces, seasoned with strong
stimulating spices. These were excluded from colleges, and consequently were
used by adults only.
I
communicated my opinion to the doctors: viz., that in the case they were about
to examine, it would be found that these burning condiments had inflamed the
intestines, and impeded nature in the discharge of her functions. My
impressions were correct. With the aid of the electric microscope upwards of
forty minute ulcers, highly inflamed, were discovered in the intestines of the
deceased, and in each of these ulcers were seen several minute grains of some
very hot condiments much in use, which had affected the inner membrane,
generated the ulcers, and caused a hasty but painful death.
Assured
of the baneful effect of the condiments, I determined to forbid their use,
though I knew this would be a serious infliction on the people, inasmuch as the
extreme heat of our climate made stimulants necessary. The condiments were much
liked, and amongst all the many fruits and vegetables we possessed there were
none that could be used as substitutes.
On
forbidding their use, I made known publicly the discovery that had been made,
every particular being clearly explained, that the people might be convinced
that I was acting for their good.
In
obedience to my orders, the spices were collected from every quarter, and
placed in large warehouses secured under lock. The "bolts" were
delivered to the kings, who were astonished at the rapidity with which I had
obtained obedience to a decree depriving all of what had become a daily want.
I
saw, however, that unless the people were supplied with a substitute for what
they had lost, they would soon return to the deleterious condiments in spite of
my decree.
Having
made known to all about me that I wished some hours for serious thought, I shut
myself up in a little cabinet at the summit of my palace, where I could see
only the heavens. All around me was silent and calm as night.
Having
prayed the aid of the Great Power, I endeavoured, by intense meditation, to
discover what healthful condiment could be substituted for the deleterious
spices of which the people were deprived.
After
many hours of deep meditation, a ray of light burst on me and I was inspired
with a happy thought. I could not as yet see the result clearly, but
nevertheless I felt that in the end my efforts would be blessed with success. I
did not hesitate to publish the fact that I had made a discovery which, when
perfected, would repay the people twenty-fold for the loss of the condiments
they had given up in obedience to my decree.
In
the mean time, until I could fully carry out my intention, I allowed the people
a particular kind of cordial; for I found that, after the extraordinary heat of
the day, many persons required stimulants, especially mothers, who had been
educated before my laws had come into operation, and whose health and
constitution had not consequently been properly fortified.
I
proceeded with my work. We have a small vegetable, called Jappeehanka, that
hangs from its stem like a fruit and has a rich creamy taste, without any other
flavour. I grafted this vegetable on a tree called Klook, the fruit of which,
used generally by persons of delicate digestion, had a sour aromatic flavour.
After
many disappointments and unsuccessful attempts to obtain the vegetable I
wished, I succeeded, by artificial means frequently employed, in growing a
small vegetable, combining the flavour of a delicate cream with the piquancy of
lemon.
The
most difficult part of my task had however not been accomplished, namely, to
give to the vegetable all the aromatic and stimulating flavours of the
prohibited spices.
A
fine specimen of the seed of each of the spice plants having been procured, I
took from the heart of each seed the smallest possible particle, and, having
with the greatest care made an incision in one of the finest seeds of my new
vegetable, I inserted therein one specimen of each of these minute particles.
The
incision was made in the centre of the seed, but not deep enough to enter or
injure its heart.
The
seed of my cream-lemon vegetable, containing the spice seed particles, I
confided to the care of my principal gardener, a man of great scientific skill
and intelligence.
I must
not omit to say that we extracted the oil out of the roots of each of the
spices formerly in general use and mixed the oils with the earth in which we
planted the newly-compounded vegetable seed.
We
watched the precious seed night and day with anxious solicitude. I had other
seeds ready prepared and planted, in case this should fail.
One
night in my slumber I was disturbed by my attendant telling me that the
gardener had an important communication to make. I bade him enter. He came to
make known to me that my labours had been so far successful, that, in the vase
of earth in which the seed had been planted, a little white bud was bursting
from the ground. He brought the vase in his arms, and I will not deny that I
shed tears of joy.
About
three years from that time, to my delight, fruit made its appearance. I watched
with greedy eagerness the day when it would ripen.
I
cannot tell you with what anxiety I tended its growth. I fancy at this moment I
feel the heart-beatings that always accompanied me as I approached the spot
where the plant was placed.
The
gardener, desiring to save me some of the pain of deferred hope, told me that
the time of ripening would be later than I had anticipated.
A
little in advance, however, of the time I had foretold, the gardener entered my
study, with a face radiant with joy, and placed before me one of the prettiest
little baskets I had ever seen, though the beauty of our basket-work is, as I
have said, remarkable. I thought it must be a present from his wife, for she
was very skilful and often presented me with baskets of her own work. Loving my
people as I did and looking on them all as my children, I saw the nervous state
of the man, and to reassure him, I said, "This is kind of your fair
Lineena." At the same time I admiringly examined the basket, but its
weight indicating that there was something inside, I raised the lid, and
beholding its contents I uttered a cry, such a cry of joy as might escape a
parent on finding a long-lost child.
The
basket contained a specimen of the precious fruit quite ripe. I turned it on
every side with anxious interest, and, having congratulated my faithful
gardener, who had so zealously carried out my wishes, I descended to the
culinary department, for I would not trust the precious treasure to others, and
I immediately proceeded to cook the vegetable of my creation.
I
directed a small bird to be prepared with which to eat the new condiment, that
I might thus test its properties; when it had been served, I directed the
gardener to sit at my table. The success was beyond my best hopes. By the
process of cooking, the fruit-vegetable had been dissolved to the consistency
of a jelly, and formed the most relishing sauce ever tasted,--aromatic,
stimulating, and appetising.
To a
richness like cream was added the pungency and aromatic flavour of spices, with
the relish of salt and the piquancy of fresh lemon-juice-- in a word, the
combination presented the finest flavour for a condiment that could possibly be
desired, surpassing all the spices and sauces hitherto known in my world.
Indeed, it was so exquisitely appetising that an epicure might easily be
tempted to eat the vegetable without the addition of the meat.
During
the growth of the tree, many slips had been planted, which were then in a
flourishing state, so that in a very short time the vegetable fruit was
cultivated extensively, and became a household necessity.
On
examining the Allmanyuka (for so we called this fruit-vegetable, meaning, that
it combined every valuable quality), and observing its effects, the doctors
pronounced it very wholesome and nutritious, and admirably suited to persons of
dyspeptic habit, inasmuch as it dispelled all symptoms of flatulency and, by
its tonic and digestive qualities, gave a feeling of lightness to the senses.
The
people wondered, and were loud in the manifestations of their gratitude, but my
joy was even greater than theirs; for I had accomplished a lasting good for the
subjects I loved.
Accompanied
by my harp, I sang praises, with all the fervour of my soul, to Him who had
inspired me with the thought, and had endowed me with patience and strength for
its consummation.
Fruits
had often been increased in size or improved in quality and productiveness, by
grafting one tree upon another; but no new fruit had previously been created.
There were instances, where trees of different kinds, the one grafted on the
other, had borne two kinds of fruit. This, however, was the first instance
where other means, besides grafting, were employed, and where an entirely new
fruit had been brought into existence.
The
Allmanyuka grows like a tree, and its stem is supported by sticks. The fruit,
which hangs from its branches, is in shape, but in shape only, not unlike your
vegetable-marrow, being covered with little circular divisions, each containing
others still more minute.
Its
colour, when raw, is of the brightest violet, which through the culinary
process becomes a beautiful red, though I should observe, that the first
compound vegetable in the seeds of which I inserted the spice particles was
yellow.
It
may not be uninteresting to know that the Allmanyuka is cooked in a vessel over
steam. Indeed, everything with us is cooked by steam, this being especially
serviceable, on account of the steadiness of its action. There are machines to
regulate the force and action of the steam, and the attendant has only to obey
mechanically the simplest instructions.
The
Allmanyuka is used in some sick-rooms as a fumigator. For this purpose it is
cut into slices, and the exuded juice which it bleeds is accompanied with an
agreeable aromatic odour.
The
fruit possesses many other valuable properties. After its discovery my people
were never more afflicted with the maladies for the prevention of which it had
been created. It was sometimes called by the name given by me,--often by a term
signifying, "Inspiration of the Father of the World." [1]
* *
* * *
[Footnote
1: Although it may appear incongruous to refer to a philosopher of this earth
as illustrating the work of a philosopher of another planet, the Editor cannot
help quoting a passage from a man possessed of wondrous prescience, who, to use
his own words, "held up a lamp in the obscurity of philosophy that would
be seen ages after he was dead." It will also in a measure convey the
difference between the process of grafting and the course pursued by the
Tootmanyoso in the creation of the Allmanyuka.
The
inspired philosopher says: "The compounding or mixing of kinds in plants
is not found out, which, nevertheless, if it be possible, is more at command
than that of living creatures, for that their lust requireth a voluntary
motion; wherefore it were one of the most noble experiments touching plants to
find it out; for so you may have great variety of new fruits and flowers yet
unknown. Grafting doth it not; it mendeth the fruit or doubleth the flowers,
etc.; but it hath not the power to make a new kind. For the scion ever
over-ruleth the stock."--_Bacon's_ 'Sylva Sylvarum.']
XXXVIII.
PAPER.
"...A
handmaid and messenger of Memory. A recorder of the aspirations of
Genius."
There
is a peculiarity in the leaf of the Allmanyuka which I will now mention; but,
to make myself intelligible, I must give you some few facts about our paper, of
which we have an unlimited supply, and which is made from the leaves of nearly
every kind of tree, gathered just before they begin to fade, but whilst still
green. Dead leaves are used for other purposes.
The
leaves of some trees make finer paper than others, and, though every kind of
leaf is available, one kind only at a time is used to make paper of the finest
quality. Mixed leaves are used to make paper of a common and coarser kind.
All
papers, when dried in the sun, have a glossy surface, and none can be torn, or
ignited by the application of fire; the paper will smoulder, but not burst into
flame. Our paper is transparent, and is besides so very light, soft, and
pliable, that in warm weather it is used for children's dresses. Very pretty it
is to see the graceful movements of the little creatures' limbs through the
pellucid costumes, which are made complete without a seam, the material being
most beautifully fine, like one of the silk gauzes of your India.
In
our world it was well known that paper could be made from rags, but this
material was not as plentiful as leaves, and we discovered, moreover, that it
was injurious to the workmen, whilst the manufacture from leaves not only
produces a paper far superior to that made with rags, but is a most healthful
occupation.
Our
trees are, I believe, more numerous than yours; but you have many trees even in
Europe from the leaves of which excellent paper of a kind similar to ours could
be made, as, for instance, the horse-chestnut and oak. The horse-chestnut leaf
makes some of the best paper; the leaves of the lilac-tree and of the
apple-tree are also excellent; but perhaps the best leaf of all for very fine
paper is the vine leaf, which has less moisture, and gives less trouble in the
preparation.
In
the manufacture of paper the leaves are subjected to a great pressure, and the
fragrance emitted from the crushed leaves is delicious, and considered very
wholesome, so much so indeed that young children are often sent to reside near
the place where the leaves are being crushed to inhale the fragrance.
The
original moisture is removed by a substance, chiefly consisting of a very fine
sand, beautifully compounded with other materials, and spread over a hard
pliant stuff. This laid on the pressed pulp sucks out all the original
moisture. The fine sand material, though possessing quite a smooth surface, is
like a sponge in its power of suction, and, when used, is unrolled and pressed
over the pulp by a machine.
This
done, the plate containing the paper is moved to an adjoining part of the
building, which is roofless, and is there exposed to the rays of the sun, which
finishes the drying process and gives a beautiful glaze or polish to the paper.
Nothing so well dries the paper as the sun, as we have proved by frequent
experiments. After the sun, fire is the most efficacious agent; but this gives
the paper a dead and chill appearance.
Our
paper is as good as yours, though not better to write upon. I have already
informed you of some of the points of difference between them. Paper can be
made to almost any size, and without any seam. One other peculiarity is that
our paper makes no more noise when doubled up than a piece of linen.
The
colour principally in use is that of cream or a very light yellow; for though
we can produce a chalky white, we do not use it in our stuffs, except for
linen.
There
is a paper which we call "natural," because its green colour
exceptionally resembles that of the leaf, although it is purely artificial,
being produced by the use of a powder obtained from a particular fruit which
hangs from a tree in the shape of small eggs, and contains a white powder of a
sticky consistency. This powder is mixed with the leaves, and the paper thus
prepared is very transparent. At first it has a kind of primrose tint, but,
when subjected to heat, or to the sun, turns green. The egg called
"Brulista Tavi," or "Lime Egg," follows a small blossom,
but the fruit alone is used. The trees are plentiful, growing on marshy ground,
a long distance from, the city, for there are no marshes in its vicinity.
GOLDEN-COLOURED
PAPER.
Some
paper is of a pure gold colour, the result of a property inherent in the leaf
itself and needing no extraneous application.
I
have told you that the coarse paper is made with leaves of every description
mixed together. On one occasion some of the paper, when dried, became speckled
with gold in different parts, presenting a beautiful appearance, which
astonished the overseer and workmen. The paper was brought to me, and I
directed the overseer to endeavour to detect in future processes the cause of
these beautiful specks. Many trials were made, but he did not for months find
any gold in the paper.
I
meditated much on the subject, and one night I retired to rest with the
singular phenomenon still in my mind. In my sleep I saw my tree, the
Allmanyuka, all gold.
On
awaking I immediately sent for the overseer, and, without relating what I had
seen in my sleep, I told him that I was impressed with the belief that it was
the leaf of my tree that produced the gold specks, and requested him to have
some paper made entirely from the Allmanyuka leaf, and to use the most delicate
machine for the experiment.
Though
accustomed to obey my orders in implicit faith, the overseer confessed to me
afterwards that for certain reasons he had great cause to doubt whether the
experiment would succeed. It, however, was commenced without delay. The pulp,
or jelly, after having passed through the process of boiling, was of a neutral
tint, without the least appearance of gold, and all hope of the desired colour
vanished in the thought of the workmen. It was, indeed, reported to me that no
golden tint was apparent; but I did not yet despair.
When
the pulp was spread out with the trowel, it remained still colourless, but
after it had undergone the process of pressing, which generally took place
immediately before sponging, it presented to the astonished workmen the
appearance of one sheet of gold; and when it had been exposed to the sun, it
acquired the highest golden polish possible.
The
material thus obtained is finer than cambric, and is used for beautiful scarfs,
sun-turbans, neckties for ladies, slippers, covers, cushions, and various
ornamental articles.
XXXIX.
CONSUMPTION.
THE
ÉMEUTE.
"The
huge poison-tree once lay concealed in the heart of the minute seed. Why seek
ye not the germs of disease poison in their minute receptacles?"
Formerly,
in certain parts of the low marshy lands, the moist and noxious exhalations
generated various diseases, particularly one answering to your phthisis, and
called by us karni-feroli, that is, "absorption of the vitality."
Numbers lingered, with energies depressed and faculties impaired, till cut off
by death. In its early stages, the disease gave no indications of its presence
beyond the signs common to the most ordinary illnesses to which, indeed, they
were attributed. However, no remedy was found by the doctors.
Even
where the possible presence of the disease was suspected, the respiratory
organs of the sufferer were subjected to various tests; but if certain symptoms
were absent, and the patient breathed easily, the physicians concluded that
there was no danger in the case. The signs they sought were in reality those
belonging to an advanced state of the disease and, when these appeared, the
malady was generally beyond cure.
No
effectual measures were taken for discovering indications of the earlier stages
of the malady before the beginning of my reign, when I observed that many young
girls, who at first seemed to suffer only from debility and lowness of spirits,
soon afterwards withered, and died of what was then called by a term answering
to your expression of "rapid consumption." This often happened where
the patients had been previously pronounced free from organic disease.
I
knew that, in the physical as in the moral constitution, evils, however grave,
have their origin in some incipient germ of small proportions, and I would not
believe that the confirmed ulcers, which I had seen during the examination of
diseased lungs in the Theatre of Anatomy, had arisen suddenly, for I reflected
that the operations of nature are gradual. These ulcers, which are, I think,
called "tubercles" by your physicians, had been the immediate cause
of many deaths.
After
much meditation, I concluded that the actual beginning of the malady was
unknown, and that the inability of the doctors to master the disease arose from
the inadequacy of the means employed for its earlier detection.
I
had frequently expressed my convictions to the ablest medical men, but they
held to their opinions and practice with unyielding tenacity. Our doctors at
that time thought that there was no science beyond what they themselves knew,
just as there were many able men who maintained that there was no other world
but Montalluyah, until the invention of my telescope brought your earth and
other worlds within the limit of their vision.
A
young and interesting girl, a penitent, from a course of incontinence and
excess, suffered much from weakness and lowness of spirits. The doctors
examined her in the usual approved way, with and without their instruments, and
declared that her lungs were healthy and sound; all that now ailed her, they
said, was the depression arising from involuntary regrets and longings for the
excitements of her former life. I had a strong impression, however, that this
was not the cause of her prostration, firmly believing that her lungs were
affected, though the doctors assured me that they had used every test with scrupulous
care to detect disease and had arrived at a contrary decision. Not being
convinced, I requested them to give me a daily report of the girl's progress.
As
she grew weaker, the doctors determined to administer a powerful potion, which
would lay the foundation of her cure, if their estimate of the malady was
right, but would accelerate death if the lungs were really affected. Persuaded
that, in the then state of medical knowledge, the girl's life could not be
saved, if the disease was really phthisis, and knowing that, if it was not the
case, the potion was calculated to do good, I did not prevent the doctors from
acting according to their own convictions.
The
potion was administered accordingly, and the girl soon fell into a calm and
tranquil sleep, from which, to the surprise and consternation of the
physicians, she never awoke.
The
body was examined, and on the right lung were found pimples, small indeed, but
visible to the naked eye, which, on closer examination with the microscope,
proved to be incipient tubercles; the left lung was similarly affected. These
incipient tubercles, though sufficient to cause languor and debility, by
attracting the vitality of the body, had not yet become of sufficient size and
virulence to affect her breathing; hence her lungs were considered sound by the
doctors, who only regarded the usual tests.
I
called together the principal physicians, chemists and heads of science, and
requested them carefully to study this formidable disease; and, after a time,
the discovery was made that all the most fatal cases of consumption were
ushered in by the appearance on the lungs of minute incipient spots, which
attract and feed on the vital juices of the body. These spots swell gradually
into pimples of a reddish hue, on which ultimately a small yellow head appears.
This breaks in due course, and the matter discharged spreads, combines, and
assists in the growth and accumulation of other and larger tubercles, which
cause much pain, greatly impede the passage of the air, and eventually carry
off the patient.
Although
pain is sometimes felt in the earlier stages of the malady, the passage of the
air through the lungs is not as yet affected to any very perceptible extent. It
was also found that the ordinary symptoms accompanying the presence of these
spots were similar to those produced by many other causes; so that the symptoms
of one disease might easily be mistaken for--as was actually the case--those of
another.
The
tests hitherto used were thus clearly shown to be insufficient for detecting
the disease, until the tubercles had assumed a size and virulence sufficient to
affect the breathing,--until, in fact, the malady was too often beyond cure.
After
some time and many experiments, most efficacious means were discovered for
detecting and curing this dreadful disease while still in its incipient state.
I
ought to mention, that on the death of the girl to whom the potion was
administered, her friends learning that I had not opposed the administering the
fatal potion, were very violent against me and, instigated by those who had at
first opposed my law, openly declared that she had been put to death by my
orders. They thus succeeded in arousing the passions of the multitude. At that
time many young persons were dying of consumption in a marshy valley, while
others were afflicted with disorders, which baffled the skill of the physicians
and were accompanied with the same symptoms that attended the malady of the
deceased girl. During the popular excitement to which I have referred, the
parents of these sufferers were made to believe that potions similar to those
which had already been administered with such fatal results, were now to be
administered to their own sick children, and that similar results would ensue.
I
lost not a moment in summoning before me the heads of families and friends of
the sufferers, at the same time announcing the subject on which I wished to
discourse.
The
meeting took place in the great hall of my palace, which is capable of
containing many thousands, and I explained to the assembled multitude that when
the potion was administered to the deceased girl, the malady was so far
advanced that there were no means of saving her life, and that in administering
the potion the doctors had hoped to do good, believing, contrary to my own
convictions, that the complaint was not organic. I explained that her death,
and the knowledge gained by the examination of her lungs, would be the
salvation of most of their children, of the nature of whose malady the doctors
were now convinced.
Asked
by the girl's friends if I would myself take a potion similar to that
administered to the girl, I offered to drink double the quantity, in the
presence of the assembled multitude. When the cup was close to my lips, and I
was about to drink the potion, a woman in the crowd called out that the liquid
I held in my hand was innocuous, and very different to the poisonous draught
administered to the girl! So convinced was she of this, that she offered to let
her own child drink the potion out of my cup!
This
child being, as I believed, afflicted with incipient consumption, I cautioned
the mother, explaining to her what would be the consequences of her rashness.
Still she insisted, and adhered to her opinion that if I could drink the potion
with impunity, the child could do the same. I resisted, until at length many in
the crowd, who had before been influenced by my words, inferred from my
hesitation that what the woman said was really true! Perceiving that further
hesitation on my part would result in great evil, and in many deaths, I allowed
the child to drink a quarter of the potion, and I swallowed the rest myself. My
lungs being perfectly sound the potion only stimulated my system, but the
effect on the child was the same as it had been on the girl: it slept, and woke
no more.
Having
addressed the people for a long time and calmed their anger, I requested them
to proceed to the place where the girl's body lay, to convince themselves of the
advanced state of the disease under which she bad suffered. They were then
marshalled by the officers of my palace, and proceeded to the Anatomical
Theatre, where they satisfied themselves with their own eyes of the truth of
what I had told them. Public confidence was restored, and many sufferers were
saved from premature death.
Effective
means were afterwards taken to detect the minute incipient pimples with which
the disease was always ushered in, and never afterwards was it allowed to reach
serious proportions. It was destroyed in its earliest germ, and thus much power
and vitality and thousands of lives were saved to the State.
XL.
THE
HARP.
"Music....the
emanation of the concentrated light of the soul....The language of the
angels."
The
harp is our principal musical instrument. We have one that is portable and in
form like a lyre; but our great harp is much larger than yours, differently
constructed, and far more effective, combining, as it does, in its tones all
the delicacy, expression, and oneness of a single executant, with the
brilliancy and power of a combined body of performers.
It
rests on a ball firmly placed on a massive pedestal, which is easily moved from
one place to another by means of small wheels. The ball on which the harp rests
revolves in a socket, so that the instrument can easily be placed in the
position the performer desires, and then, by means of a bolt, fixed firmly in
its place. No support from the executant is needed. The harp does not rest upon
him in any way, and he has, at the same time, entire power over every part.
The
instrument is divided into fourths, that is, into four sets of chords. The
first only of these four sets is touched by the player, but on any of the first
set being intoned, each corresponding string of the three other sets, all of
which are stouter and more powerful than the set played upon, resounds in
harmony.
The
power given out by the three sets of strings is proportioned to the sound
produced on the first set by the performer, as the force of an echo is stronger
or weaker according as the sound producing it is increased or diminished in
volume.
In
the framework of the harp there are conducting strings of electricity, which
unite all the rest with the first set and with each other. The electricity is
generated by a liquid contained in a small tube, and is set in motion by the
movement of the strings of the first set of chords. The tube can be placed in
or removed from the instrument with the greatest ease; without it, the first
set alone responds to the player's touch.
The
musician has the power of varying and depressing the notes of the instrument in
a marvellous manner, so as to produce instantaneously the most delicate or the
most powerful sounds, with endless modulations and variety of tone. I have heard
echoes and responses given out as though the music had been breathed from a
great distance;--the gentlest whispers were alternated with all the force of a
band of music.
I
could not, without much expenditure of time and labour, and without explaining
our science of music, which is altogether different to yours, convey to you an
adequate notion of the effect produced by a skilful player. I have seen a
multitude turned away from evil designs by the exquisite playing of the
harpist--their passions calmed, their thoughts raised from earth to heaven.
By
the aid of little knobs on the instrument, the diapason can be changed to an
extent that you would not credit, for it has reference to a system different to
yours. The compass and extent of sound given by our harps is very considerably
higher than the notes produced by your violins, and deeper than the lowest
notes given by your contrabassi.
We
do not count by octaves, but by touching twos or threes different characters of
sounds are produced, indicated by names such as--gaiety, joy, melancholy,
truthfulness, fickleness in some things, fickleness in all things, an exalted
mind, poetry, domestic peace, hatred, jealousy, morbid sensibility, pardon,
receiving again into favour, flowers, decay of health, sickness, returning
health, love in a gentle degree, love in a sublime degree, doubting, also
trusting love, loneliness, disappointment, ambition.
These
and many other sentiments are expressed by strains that go directly to the
soul, and without the need of words. As all in Montalluyah understand the
language the music is intended to convey, the player, without opening his lips,
can express himself on the harp as clearly as by discourse; and two persons
playing can hold a conversation.
As
you have certain sounds responding to _do, re, mi_, &c., so have we certain
sounds and harmonies that convey certain expressions; for instance: "I
esteem you;" "I feel you in the pulsations of my blood," _i.e._
"I love you." Or perhaps the vibrations of the same harmony would be
varied so as to be higher or lower, sharp or flat; and the player would convey
that he felt the presence of his beloved in the appropriate vibration of his
nerves.
In
another harmony, he would compare the admired object to some beautiful soft
bird like the Zudee, or a pet like the Kamouska.[1]
[Footnote
1: See p. 145.]
On
the occasion of a love scene between a great harpist and a lady, I have heard
the following, amongst many other sentiments, expressed by the harp: First
Lenordi the harpist expressed his glowing sympathy, his admiration of beauty,
of goodness, his pleading to be heard, his hope that no other occupied the
lady's thoughts, his despair if his prayers were not listened to, hope,
expressions of eternal devotion; in short, all the possible outpourings of a
loving heart. It would be too tedious to tell you all he conveyed, but he ended
thus, "Thou art pure as the dew upon the leaf of opening day ... but like
to that dew wilt thy love pass away!"
Giola--the
lady--took her place at the harp, and played a response expressing the
following:--"Would I might believe these flattering vibrations, and the
bright hopes raised within an hour to wither in a day.
"Could
they but last, the skies above would pale beneath their brightness.
"Yet
I would not doubt thee; thy every look makes life a dream of love."
The
player then made excuses for her seeming enthusiasm, by declaring that even
inanimate matter is moved by his soul-stirring strains.
"Every
flower and every tendril is moved by thee, for, like thee, they are fresh and
gently gay."...
This
led eventually to a "choice" meeting, and the marriage was attended
with many interesting incidents. Their history would of itself form a curious
romance!
Every
one competent is educated in the meaning of the harp-sounds, and the
instruction in this branch of study commences at an early age. Certain
sentences are written, and a sound is given out and repeated till the young
person thoroughly understands what he has heard. Then the sentence is renewed,
perhaps, in connection with another sentence, the accompanying sound is given,
and in a short time the student says the word or sentence accompanying every
sound, and thus he soon learns how to use these sounds, and how to vary and
combine them, just as an alphabet or series of words would be used by an able
writer.
When
the instrument is used as a subsidiary agent, and the player accompanies his
own or another's voice with words, he plays an accompaniment implying words,
but not so as to attract attention from the singer. There are certain
accompaniments which are adapted to anything that might be sung. These,
however, the player can vary, if his talent is sufficient.
Our
songs are generally spontaneous effusions, but there are songs with which
certain words are permanently associated.
The
harp itself is beautiful as a work of sculptural art. Around its framework most
elegant and tasteful ornaments are executed with the minutest perfection--small
birds of variegated plumage perched on graceful foliage of green enamel, with
flowers in their natural colours, so executed as closely to resemble nature.
The birds, flowers, and foliage are connected with the chords of the harp, and
conceal from view small vases or reservoirs set in the framework of the
instrument. From these with every touch of the chords a beautiful fragrance is
exhaled, the force or delicacy of which depends on the more powerful or gentler
strains produced from the instruments.
The
instant the player strikes the chords, the little birds open their wings, the
flowers quiver in gentle action, and then from the vases are thrown off jets of
perfume. The more strongly the chords are touched, the more powerfully does the
fragrance play around.
In
tender passages the perfume gradually dies away, till it becomes so faint as to
be appreciated only by the most delicate organisations. The result, however,
is, that the sense is gratified, the heart touched, and the whole soul
elevated. I have seen the most ardent natures calmed and rendered gentle by the
divine strains of this angelic instrument.
It
is said that in the angelic spheres flowers breathe music as well as fragrance,
and that the sound itself has form, colour, and perfume. This belief suggested
the thought of uniting them in harmonious concert for the gratification of
those who had exercised the gifts accorded them by Heaven to a good end. As
they had gained their position by their own merit, it was sought in every way
to increase their happiness and their enjoyments. Nothing that art could
produce was thought too good for them.
I
loved the world. The wicked only are impatient and discontented. I knew that
blessings are everywhere about us, though we are expected to exercise our
intelligence to make them available; and whilst I inculcated that
"intemperance is not enjoyment," and that "intemperance
destroyed the power of enjoyment," I did not hesitate to tell my people
that the world and the blessings everywhere abounding are given us to enjoy,
and that, like guests invited to a banquet, we were neither to run riot nor to
reject the good things offered us in love.
XLI.
SOCIAL
INTERCOURSE.
"The
contact of society is necessary for the nurture and preservation of the
generous feelings implanted in us by the Great Spirit."
In the
system I inaugurated, where every man pursued his occupation with enthusiastic
delight, because he was engaged in that for which nature and education had
fitted him, it became necessary to enjoin recreation and amusement as a duty,
particularly in the case of learned men, whose attention was concentrated on
one particular subject.
Before
my reign learned men had been sometimes prone to seclude themselves from the
world, while the opulent indulged in amusements to excess, and had indeed need
of laws rather to restrain than to enjoin indulgence. Now, however, few, except
the "humble" classes (for we have no "poor" in your sense
of the word), would have sought after diversions had not my laws enjoined them
as a duty.
As
regards learned men, I knew that if one part of the brain was unduly excited
and overworked, the other portions would lie dormant and suffer. All classes
therefore were required to "undergo" amusements, and many were the
precepts to encourage them in the pursuit. I added to these the force of my own
example; for, though occupied incessantly with the cares of government and with
abstruse meditations, I nevertheless attended amusements of all kinds, and
often gave fętes of great beauty and magnificence for the recreation of the
people. I was a frequent attendant at places of amusement, public games, and
races, and refreshed myself almost daily with the sympathetic contact of the
numerous society which my hospitality brought round my table.
When
my laws on the subject of social intercourse were first promulgated there were
many wise men who questioned the wisdom of my requiring the learned to
cultivate social relations. These addressed to me many arguments in support of
their views and objected that, without having their thoughts interrupted by the
clang of society, simple changes of subject, or at least the simplest
distractions, would amply suffice to give the necessary repose. I always
encouraged the learned to communicate to me their opinions, to which I
invariably listened with attention; and in this case the arguments they adduced
in support of their views were so plausible that I resolved to convince them by
an actual experiment.
To
satisfy them, and confirm the belief of others, I allowed the chief opponents
of my doctrines to select ten learned men who desired to pursue their own idea
of seclusion, and ten others were selected by me from those who were converts
to my views in matters of recreation and amusement. The twenty men thus
selected were, as nearly as possible, equal in point of talent, and were all
engaged on the same engrossing subject--one which required great concentration
of thought. The utmost care was taken that the experiment might be fairly and
conclusively tried.
The
result of this experiment, which extended over many years, proved indisputably
that I was right; for whilst the productions of the "amusing and
amused" men were equal in all, and in many respects superior to, those of
the "seclusionists," the latter showed visible marks of the evils of
their abstinence.
After
a few years their indifference for the world had grown into positive
misanthropy. They refused to receive any visits, became negligent of their
personal appearance, and centred their whole affection upon the object of their
study.
Among
those who had lived in seclusion seven out of the ten had lost their hair and
the freshness of their complexion, both of which with us are highly valued.
They were very sallow, and their figures betrayed the incipient decrepitude of
old age, though for our world they were but in the prime of life, if not of
early manhood. Besides which they had formed contracted notions on many
subjects, some of them being what is called eccentric.
On
the other hand, the collected works of the ten men who had profited by contact
with the world and its amusements were equal in all respects, and indeed
superior in some, to those of the "seclusionists." They were for the
most part large and liberal minded. There was but one who might be called
narrow-minded and eccentric, but his exceptional state was greatly owing to the
fact that the origin of this tendency had not been attended to in childhood. He
had, indeed, been educated under the old system and consequently before the
establishment of the office of Character-divers. This man was the only one who
was subject, though partially, to the physical accidents which had affected the
"Seclusionists." The remaining nine "Society-sympathisers"
remained fresh, vigorous, and gay.
What,
however, satisfied my wise men the most was, that the works of the learned men
who had lived in contact with the world were actually in many respects superior
to the works of the Seclusionists, although these also were more than
remarkable.
In
requiring learned men to mix with the world, I did not forbid frequent solitude
and retirement for meditation. I only objected to the passion being indulged in
to the exclusion of the refreshing sympathies developed by a contact with
society.
The
result of the experiment I have referred to seemed to satisfy even the ten
Seclusionists, who at least changed their habits in obedience to my law, The
effects of the seclusion on some of the ten were, however, not got rid of,
until a certain time had elapsed, and, but for increased knowledge of the
malady of monomania, these effects on one of the ten Seclusionists would have
been even far more serious than they fortunately proved to be.
THE
MONOMANIAC.
This
man, eminent in the highest degree, believed that another learned man, his
friend and greatest admirer, was his bitter enemy. All efforts to convince him
to the contrary were fruitless, for although remarkably clear-sighted on most
other subjects, he obstinately refused on this to listen to the truth. Indeed,
the remonstrances of his friends had the effect of strengthening his conviction
that the reptile, as he called the supposed enemy, assumed the appearance of
friendship, the better to mask his infamous designs.
This
delusion went on for some time, but did not show itself beyond words, and even
those were never addressed to the supposed enemy, whose designs he said
"he would meet with simulation and the reptile's own insidious
weapons." Greatly as all this was to be regretted, the man was so
venerated, and was usually so calm, that none suspected any tendency to a
deranged intellect. His strong feelings were ascribed to mistaken impressions,
until a very disagreeable occurrence opened our eyes to his real state.
Both
he and his supposed "enemy" were present at a dinner, given by a high
official, the chief Knowledge-tester or Examiner. Our dining-tables are
semicircular, and the guests are seated on the convex side only. The
Monomaniac, being a particular friend, honoured by the host, sat next to him in
the centre. The supposed "enemy" happened to be seated at the extreme
end of the semicircle, and consequently in a position to be seen from the
centre of the table. All went on well till about the middle of the repast, when
suddenly the Monomaniac rose, pointed to his supposed enemy, and addressing
himself to the guests, said, "Look there! Do you not see the grimaces he
is making at me?"
Every
one marvelled! The host addressed the Monomaniac in a gentle tone, entreating
him to have more control over his temper, Those seated close to the supposed
"enemy" declared loudly that he had made no grimaces; but their
denial only increased the fury of the accuser. A bird-- considered a great
delicacy--had just been placed before the host. It was arranged, as were our
dishes generally, to please the eye as well as the palate, being ornamented
with olives, sweetmeats, and other ingredients of varied colours. Birds, I may
incidentally remark, are cooked without the bones; these are skilfully taken
out and serve to enrich the gravy.
The
Monomaniac again rose suddenly and, before his arm could be arrested, seized
the fowl, larded as it was with accessories and dripping with gravy, and with
all his force hurled it whole, with unerring aim, at the face of the supposed
enemy. So great was his excitement, and so rapid his movements, that he had
seized one of the "knife-spoons," and had he not been arrested, would
probably have hurled that, and, indeed, everything within reach against the
object of his fury.
At
private dinners the number of guests never exceeds twelve, and at the back of
each, corresponding to every seat, is a small closet, ordinarily used by each
guest for his ablutions. Into one of these the Monomaniac was placed with
considerable difficulty, everything with which he could injure himself having
been previously removed. By the doctor's order he was treated as a patient and,
after some time, the result of the application of the tests, then only recently
discovered, showed that he was much affected with brain animalcula, which had been
generated by the exhaustion of one part of the brain, in consequence of the
incessant occupations of another portion, by one all-engrossing subject,
without the relief of sufficient air, recreation, and bodily exercise.
The
"supposed enemy" and the Monomaniac had been both occupied on the
same subject; the latter was much superior, and had consequently attained
greater distinction. Nothwithstanding this, he was fearful that the
"enemy" would ultimately excel him.
At
the end of a few months the Monomaniac was completely cured. It was not,
however, until after a year's travel and change of scene that he was allowed to
resume his old studies. He now became more brilliant than ever, and we were
indebted to him for some valuable discoveries. He had learned that his supposed
enemy was a real friend and true admirer of his great talents. He never
suffered again from the affliction, which, had it not been arrested in time,
would have ended in confirmed madness. He became more than ever a strong
advocate for the observance of my laws in favour of recreation.
XLII.
THEATRES.
ELECTRICAL
ENTERTAINMENTS--AMUSEMENTS--INTRODUCTION OF STRANGERS.
"....Even
the daisies of the field grow in company...."
Besides
theatres of another kind, there are large arenas, where the entertainments
principally consist of feats worked out by electricity and produce effects far
beyond anything as yet known in your planet. These arenas are open to the sky,
for electric effects are not exhibited in roofed buildings, from fear of the
explosions which would probably occur were antagonistic electricities brought
in contact with each other in a covered space.
The
games exhibited are varied; but, in all, electricity has some part. As I have
already said, we have electricities, some attractive, some antipathetic to the
human frame,--and by the aid of both kinds many interesting feats are
performed.
I
have seen a man and horse in the arena, who, at a given signal, would rise
gradually and gracefully to a distance of more than fifty feet from the earth.
When suspended in the air a cloud, like fire, would encircle them, and then
after a certain time, sufficient for the spectators to observe and admire them,
they would alight on the earth as gradually and gracefully as they had
ascended.
THE
FLYING CHILDREN.
In
one of these arenas is a large sheet of running water, supplied by a cataract
in the neighbourhood; and I have seen the most beautiful effects produced by
children gliding over and as it were dancing on its surface. The children are
selected from the most graceful and beautiful of those, who, not having
sufficient intellect to learn, give no signs of making a progress which would
fit them for more important occupations.
These
children are taught and willed to move in the most graceful forms.
Joining hands and forming exceedingly beautiful groups, they will glide over
the cascade and over the surface of the agitated lake, walking, dancing, or
reposing.
WILL.
In
assuming these graceful forms, the children are aided by a person skilled in
the use of the Will, who, with the assistance of our
"sympathetic-attracting machines," [1] can will the children
to take the most varied and graceful positions. The effect is fascinating,
elevating, and refining.
[Footnote
1: See p. 265.]
The
man who directs the sympathetic machine, wills the figures from his
imagination or memory, this being part of the art in which he is skilled.
In
your planet, you do not know the extent of the power of the Will; and yet it is
the Will--the Will of the Soul--which sets our vital electricity in motion,
directs it on particular parts of its own machine--the brain--or on the
sentient faculties of others. This same vital electricity can be used with
greater force and certainty of direction, when assisted by the instrument which
I have called "the sympathetic machine."
THE
DEAF AND DUMB CHILD.
I
have seen one little girl deaf and dumb--the only instance in my time--in
consequence of a fright her mother had experienced. The child was of so nervous
a temperament, that she could not be taught anything intellectual. She was
lovely, with long hair that fell about her in graceful curls, and in whatever
way she sat, moved, or reclined, her poses and movements were angelic.
It
was found that the only thing which would awaken her dormant senses was
electricity; and that, under its influence, she would be well and happy.
This
child was at length taught to remain for some time together in one of her
beautiful poses.
The
circus in which I saw her is built close to a mountain or steep ascent, which
rises almost perpendicularly to a great height. By the power of an attractive
electricity, she would be made--whilst in one of her beautiful poses--to rise
gradually, and to be borne flying, as it were, in the air. She would then be
made to alight on the top of the high rock, where a halo of concentrated light
was thrown on her; this clung about her, attracted by a solution with which her
dress was sponged. The light was calculated to remain undissipated for half an
hour.
After
some time, and having taken the most graceful poses, encircled with the lovely
halo, the child would glide off the rock and descend slowly and gracefully
through the air--with the varied colours of the halo about her--as though she
were a being of the celestial stars.
Of
all exhibitions, I have never seen any more beautiful than this. It served
admirably to raise, refine, and rouse the spectator to enthusiasm.
THE
MONKEYS.
On
the other hand, some of our electric exhibitions produce mirth. For instance,
the effect of electricity on the monkeys in Montalluyah--who are very
sagacious, having faces white like a human being, and talking like parrots--is
ludicrous in the extreme. When engaged in chewing and eating their favourite
nuts, they find themselves, in spite of their cunning, raised to a great
height, without seeing the man underneath their pedestal, who impels them
upwards with antipathetic electricity.
When
they are thus in the air, and, in spite of all efforts, unable to descend,
their antics are of the drollest kind. They, in turn, threaten and entreat the
audience, but are soon reassured and liberally rewarded for the parts they have
played in amusing the public.
Apart
from the contemplation of electrical effects, these amusements may appear
somewhat puerile. It should therefore be observed that our people generally
retain to the last an almost child-like freshness of feeling, which renders
them keenly susceptible to the most innocent pleasures. The tragic drama is for
us extinct. Towards the middle of my reign, plays based upon crime ceased to be
heard with pleasure, as the new generation, trained under the wholesome
influence of my laws, could scarcely understand a plot relating to passions
entirely foreign to their nature. The writers for our theatres, properly so
called, have since that period confined themselves to subjects illustrative of
country life in plain and mountain, and to incidents which, though happening at
a distance, are known to occur.
No
accidents arise. Our professors are very skilful, knowing the exact quantities
of electricity required for a given time, and at what rate its power will
decrease. Electricity in all its variations is thoroughly understood by our
electricians.
Electricity,
indeed, now forms part of the studies of youth in general, and its leading
features form part of the early knowledge taught to both girls and boys.
There
are races and public games of all kinds, and, besides the fętes and amusements
given by private persons, there are balls and social reunions given by the
districts.
Even
children have their parties and balls, to which they are taken from four years
of age and upwards. The labouring people, or poor, have theirs. They go to work
more cheerfully when they know that amusements are to follow, and return to
their labours with redoubled energy. They are now contented and happy.
Old
people, although allowed to attend the soirées of the young, have parties of their
own, to which none who have not passed a certain age are admitted.
One
day in the week is set apart for amusements of all kinds.
To
the reunions given by the districts, all who have passed a certain age are
invited, every seven days, until the age of forty; after forty, once in three
weeks; after sixty, once in every six weeks. All who have not passed their
fortieth year are expected to attend these reunions. Those who have passed
forty may attend as often as they please.
INTRODUCTION
OF STRANGERS.
Amongst
these reunions there are balls and parties given on certain days in every
month, for the introduction of strangers coming from other parts, who are
received in a separate room by the Master of the Ceremonies, or, as we say,
"Introducer of Strangers." Having satisfied himself of the status of
the strangers, this officer announces the name of the eldest and conducts him
round the great room, where all the company are assembled, which duty
performed, he conducts the guest back to the strangers' room, and then, having
returned into the assembly-room, asks if any one wished to make objection to
the stranger's reception. If none is made, the visitor is escorted back and
presented to the whole company, and the most distinguished amongst them are
expected to take him by the hand and seat him by their side.
This
ceremony over, the stranger is allowed to visit every person present at their
residences, where he is received with great hospitality.
When,
however, in answer to the Introducer's question, any one says, "I do
object to be introduced to that person," he is required to state his
reasons, which the "Introducer" writes down, and which the objector
is required to read and sign.
The
"Introducer" then proceeds to the strangers' room, and says to the
proposed guest, "We find it will not be agreeable to terminate the
presentation to-night, so we reserve it for another day," which is fixed
accordingly.
On
the following day, the most effective means are taken to test the validity of
the objections, and it has been found that the few cases of objection that have
been raised have been almost invariably based on error, or on exaggerated
trifles, which would scarcely bear a moment's examination.
As a
record of every one's career is faithfully kept, we have ready means of making
ourselves acquainted with every one's antecedents and, consequently, of testing
the validity of the "objections."
The
objections being removed, the stranger is received with a hearty welcome. When
conducted into the assembly-room, the person who made the objections having
been pointed out to him, he is addressed as follows:--"In all this great
assembly, this is the only person who urged anything against you, and we find
that all he imagined arose from misconception [or as the case may be]. This we
have taken every pains to rectify, and we leave to you to do what may be
pleasing to yourself, in order to convince him still more completely of his
error; and you have our best wishes that unity, harmony, and peace may exist
between you." This done, the newly-received guest is seated between the
principal personages, and is treated with, if possible, more kindness and
consideration than if no objection had been made. In each class we follow the
same custom, which we find works admirably well. It is peculiarly adapted to
our system.
THE
ATTRACTING-MACHINE.
I
have spoken above of our sympathetic attracting-machine, and I may mention here
that by means of certain acids acted on by the sun's rays, a person can be
compelled to move even from a great distance towards a given point in the way
willed by the operator. It is, however, necessary to discover, first; the
particular acids that have most affinity with the person to be attracted. To
ascertain these with certainty, there is a little instrument with many separate
cells, all communicating by means of its tube with one little ball, and each
containing a different acid.
Unless
some attraction, or power in sympathy with the acids, is applied to the ball,
the acids remain quiescent, each in its separate compartment. To discover what
acids have most attractive force with a given person, the ball is placed
against his breast, whereupon the portions of those acids which have affinity
with him rush forth from their respective cells up each tube into the ball,
where they immediately commingle, forming one compound liquid of unequal
component parts. The scientific man charged with the operation then notes the
exact quantities of each of the component acids, and all pertinent particulars.
This
is an easy process. Each principal acid is weighed before being placed in its
cell, which is open from the top; and before the ball is removed from the
chest, what remains of each acid is taken out from its compartment and
re-weighed. The difference between the weights, before and after the operation,
gives the exact weight of each acid, forming one of the component parts of the
amalgamated fluid in the ball.
It
is rare that the exact proportions of the same acids are applicable to any two
men, though, as in the case of faces, the difference may be so slight as almost
to approach identity. In some it is very great; but the same kinds of acids
suffice to ascertain the attractive power of every individual.
The
particular sympathetic acids and their proportions having been ascertained, the
attracting-machine is prepared and charged with a large quantity of the
sympathetic compound, sufficiently powerful to attract the person selected,
although placed at some distance. To be effective, however, the operation must
take place while the sun is shining; and it is also necessary that the person
directing the machine should exercise a certain amount of will tending towards
the end desired. The power of will is great, and there are a few persons who
can make others do certain things without the aid of the instrument, by the
power of will alone; but, in such cases, the person "willing" must be
near the person acted on.
XLIII.
SHIPS.
"Would
ye triumph over the seas in all their fury? Would ye spare the lives of those
who toil for you? Let your ships he harder than the rocks, swifter than the
message-bird, more buoyant than the swan, and as enduring as the Mestua
Mountain."
Our
ships are of peculiar form and construction, and of all but exhaustless
strength and durability. In ancient times the form of a fish had been taken as
a model for their construction, and the same form was continued for centuries.
The ships built on this principle, however, often foundered at sea, or were
broken to pieces, when driven against the rocks, by the violence of tempests.
Moved
by the loss of life and consequent suffering thus occasioned, I sought to
construct a vessel that could neither founder nor be broken, at whatever speed
it might move.
I
reasoned that a fish, formed to live and to act principally under the water,
was hardly a fit model for ships intended to float on its surface, and
certainly not to sink.
After
much consideration on the part of our scientific men, the form of the swan was
successfully adopted as best fitted for sea-going ships.
Our
"Swan-ships," as I may call them, are constructed of timbers,
previously seasoned to prevent insect breeding and to resist all tendency to
shrink, and are completely covered with the hide of the hippopotamus, which, it
should be observed, is impervious to water, and, when prepared for use, is so
tough that no knife or machine, however sharp or powerful, can cut, pierce, or
indeed make any impression upon it, until it has passed through a process, in
which fire has a great part, and is thus purposely deprived of its impenetrable
nature.
In
the construction of the ship, the outline of the swan is followed as nearly as
possible. The prow rises out of the water, shaped like the bird's neck and
head; the keel is rounded like the belly; the stern is an imitation of the
tail; the legs are supplied by two large adjuncts in the shape of webbed feet,
with the addition, however, of numerous wheels fastened round the swan's belly,
which are partially immersed in the water and moved by powerful machinery
within the vessel.
On
each side of the swan's body is an auxiliary platform, forming, as it were, a
wing. These platforms are raised in fine weather, and serve as open-air
promenades for the passengers, in addition to another terrace on the swan's
back, immediately above.
The
ship has no masts, and is thus available throughout for passengers and
merchandise. The apertures between the decking, that admit light and air, can
be closed up at a moment's notice, and the vessel, being thus rendered
water-tight, will ride through the most violent storm. No rocks can break her,
and no sea can swamp her.
During
hurricanes the seas rise so high and in such large masses, that, in descending,
they sometimes submerge her; but she is too buoyant to sink, soon regains the
surface, and floats on as buoyant as ever.
The
navigation in our world would on your earth be considered very dangerous, if not
impracticable. The swan-ship, even when driven by the tempest, must often pass
through narrow inlets between dangerous rocks, sometimes under the
rocks, through channels scooped out by the sea. The force of the hurricanes and
the violence of the seas are tremendous. Your most powerful ships could not
live through them, yet no serious accident has ever befallen one of our
vessels. On one occasion, when the ship was submerged for a time, the people
suffered greatly from want of air, as the sea was too terribly rough to allow
of any window being opened. After remaining covered by the waters for a length
of time, she righted herself as soon as the violence of the waves had calmed.
On
their return to Montalluyah, some of the passengers related to me their acute
sufferings from want of air, and as their narrative affected me much, I
resolved to discover a remedy.
Telescopic
funnels to admit air were suggested by me as a provision for such a contingency
as I have described. These are so constructed that in case of need they can be
sent up to a great height above the surface of the sea. The principal one is
placed in the head of the swan. Several experiments were made with air-pumps in
the ship to draw in and diffuse air, and they fully answered this purpose.
Air can
still be admitted through the head and neck of the swan, if the body only is
submerged; but if this also is covered by the sea, the telescopic funnel is
sent up to the required height and a new current of air is obtained. Light and
air are, under ordinary circumstances admitted by means of windows made with a
transparent composition of great strength.
The
swan's head is reserved for the captain's quarters. His rooms are spacious and
well suited to his work; his windows are, some plane, some concave, some
convex, so that he can see both near and distant objects. As the swan's head is
high above the body of the swan, the captain occupies a very commanding
position. Outside the head there is a terrace for his use.
Our
ships are very large, that each passenger may have the utmost accommodation,
for we do not like to imprison our people in a narrow space; and an ordinary
vessel holds several hundred passengers, besides merchandise.
To
propel our vessels we use electric power, and they move as fast as your quickest
railway trains; but nevertheless can be stopped almost instantaneously. The
wheels outside the body of the swan, set in motion by internal electric
machinery, revolve with extraordinary rapidity. To set the machinery in motion
it is necessary to wind up powerful chains, and a strong horse is used for the
purpose. One horse is sufficient for the longest voyage, but four are kept on
board in case of accidents. The machinery could be so constructed that the
horse would not be necessary; but for this arrangement much more space would be
required. If even all the horses were disabled--a thing which hitherto has
never occurred--the machinery could be kept in motion by manual power and
leverage.
Though
the propelling power is great, it can be reversed, moderated, or entirely
suspended with the greatest ease. As soon as the ship is stopped, the two large
"web-feet" attached to the keel fall down and assist in checking her
headway.
To
steer our vessels we use a winch or rudder, which runs from stem to stern underneath
the swan's belly, and is connected with a wheel below the water. This rudder,
which is made of metal and covered with hippopotamus hide, is sharp and
slightly rounded. The mode in which it is fixed gives the steersman great
control over the vessel, the more so as it moves the swan's head as well as the
tail by direct action.
TIMBER
FOR SHIPS.
Before
timber is employed for ships, or indeed for constructions of any kind, it is
thoroughly seasoned by being exposed to the sun at particular hours of the day.
Timbers that have passed through this process never shrink or warp.
In
accordance with my directions, wood cannot be used in shipbuilding until so
prepared that no insects will touch it.
In
certain parts of the bottom of the great ravine is a liquid, the admixture of
refuse of all kinds. After some years this liquid becomes of a golden colour
for the depth of about two inches only; beneath, it is of a muddy brown. It was
accidentally discovered that the golden liquor so hardened wood that no insect
could make any impression upon it, and no moisture could penetrate the fibres.
There is some difficulty in skimming and obtaining the liquid in a pure state;
but the operation having been performed, it is carefully preserved in large
vats and remains ready for use.
The
timber having been thoroughly seasoned in the sun, each plank is cut and shaped
to the exact form required, and is then soaked in this liquid. If the process
of cutting were delayed till after the timber had been soaked, the parts where
the cuttings had been made would be unprotected from the insects. If the
soaking were delayed until after the ship had been put together, the four sides
of each of the timbers where it is joined to other timbers, would in like
manner be unprotected, and the insects would eat their way between. The care
exercised was the more necessary, as it was essential that the wood under the
hippopotamus hide should be preserved from internal as well as external
influences. If the wood had shrunk after it had been once covered, parts of the
hide would become slack, and serious inconveniences would have ensued. I never
knew one of our Swan vessels to spring a leak or to wear out. The vessels built
under my rule will exist unimpaired for many centuries, whilst those built
under the former system were broken to pieces on account of their foulness and
leakage, chiefly caused by the ravages of insects.
THE
COMPASS.
The
compass used in our ships is different to yours, being based on the fact that
each country has a different attraction to certain liquids. In short, we apply
an electrical power entirely unknown to you.
THE
ANCHOR.
The
anchor is made of iron-marble, which is the strongest composition we have, and
which, you will recollect, was used in the construction of the Mountain
Supporter.
In
shape the anchor resembles a body with six legs, like a fly--three on either
side. Each leg has a crook at the end, which will grapple firmly wherever the
least hold can be obtained.
The
anchor is let out and hauled in by machinery made on a principle resembling the
machinery of the ship itself, but, of course, on a very much smaller scale.
The
rope holding the anchor is made of Bisson hair, a very strong material; and
although there is little probability of its breaking, there are four other
ropes of the same material secured to the body of the anchor, to serve in case
of accidents. There is no strain whatever in the meantime on these reserved
ropes, which hang slack, and would only come taut and into play in case of the
principal rope being broken.
XLIV.
PICTURES
FROM WATER.
"The
records of your actions are borne in the waters, in the air, in electricity, in
the unknown powers that, by the command of Him who made them all, pervade
infinite space. His might is everywhere; and the man who transgresses, sins in
the presence of myriads of witnesses."
In
my reign some interesting discoveries were made with regard to water.
From
a source situated in the midst of a lovely scene flowed a spring of remarkably
pure quality, some drops of which, taken at a distance, presented, when viewed
through a microscope, a true picture of the landscape close to the source from
whence they came. Rocks, trees, shrubs, sky, were there faithfully delineated
with their varied forms and colours, together with the resemblances of two
persons, lovers, seated on the banks. As we afterwards learned, they had been
attracted by the beauty of the scene, had sat for a long time in the same
place, and their portrait was, as it were, fixed on the water.
The
electricity of the sun and light had thrown the shadow or picture of the scene
on the fluid, whose electricity had been sufficiently strong to retain it, and
bear it to the spot whence the drops of water had been taken. This
circumstance, and our knowledge that the reflecting power of the water is the
result in part of its peculiar electricity, led to a very interesting discovery.
With
the assistance of a powerfully attracting electric machine we can produce,
together with the surrounding landscape, the likeness of a person, or of a
group, actually many miles from the machine, if near the water. The image is
received on the reflecting mirror of the machine, and an artist immediately
copies outlines and colours.
With
the aid of the attracting machine we have obtained pictures of our
Swan-vessels, though a long way out at sea, with the passengers on the decks;
who, on arriving, have been surprised to find their likenesses, with a
similitude of the costume they wore while on board.
The
machine, through the medium of the water, throws its attracting power many
miles out through the sea, and reflects objects back on a large plate of a kind
of ground-glass. The objects reflected are not fixed permanently, but remain on
the plate for about an hour and a half after the connection with the machine
has ceased. During this time an artist traces the picture which it is desired
to retain, and fills in the colours. The reflection thrown is indeed little
more than a pale-coloured shadow, but we make of it a reality at will.
Our
knowledge of the properties of water enables us, with the aid of an
electric-attracting machine, to see the bottom of the sea. Images of the
deepest parts are thrown upon the mirror, the force of the machine being
increased according to the depth of the sea, and the distance from the machine.
Some
parts of the bottom of the sea reveal nothing but uninhabited, uneven ground,
whilst other parts present the appearance of an inhabited world. We have seen
the entrances to large caverns with what may be called doors, and immense
moving masses; flowers and parterres of most delicate and lovely beauty;
varieties of precious stones, forming devices and figures of different kinds;
and large shrubs that glistened as diamonds in the sun, and thriving and
blossoming, seemed replete with life. In other parts of the sea lie strewn in
irregular masses things of every description in incredible quantities, heaps
upon heaps, as though these parts had at some time been dry land, where riches
of every description had been congregated. A description of the wonders seen
would fill many volumes.
XLV.
THE
HIPPOPOTAMUS.
"Ye
seek Elikoia's life....Ye watch to make sure of your prey, when the boy is
alone, his thoughts fixed on high....Ye shall wear hideous forms, ye shall
wander on the land, as well as on the water, but nowhere shall ye find rest. Ye
shall dread and be dreaded by all; ye shall constantly be put to death, that
your hide and carcase at least may serve for useful purposes in the land that
ye have denied.... Ye shall be slain with no more compunction than when a man
cuts down a tree with which to make his hut." [1]....
[Footnote
1: The above belongs to the ancient mythology of Montalluyah.]
Hippopotami
are very numerous in my planet; their breed is encouraged, for they are found
to be invaluable.
They
are of a cruel nature, and there is much antipathy between them and human
beings. Apart from the valuable uses to which they are made subservient, these
beasts are regarded in our planet with a feeling akin to that with which you
regard the serpent, it having been supposed in the early ages of our world that
the hippopotamus embodied a portion of the spirit of the enemy of mankind.
THE
HIPPOPOTAMUS HIDE.
The
hide of the beast is of remarkable strength and durability, and is impervious
to water; indeed, its toughness is, if possible, increased by immersion. It is
used for a variety of purposes, forming a covering for our vessels, the want of
which nothing could supply in our tempestuous and rocky seas. It serves most
effectually to insulate and protect our electric telegraphs both by land and
sea. It resists the most violent usage, and no force, without the application
of fire, can break it, for it is so tough, even in an unprepared state, that it
can only be severed or penetrated by the application of fire and red-hot
penetrating-irons.
The
nearest approach to the hide of the hippopotamus is that of the rhinoceros; but
this is not so tough or so durable, and it is inferior in other qualities.
The
value of the hippopotamus is incalculable. Whilst alive, we can extract from
him a powerful electricity. When dead, besides the innumerable purposes to
which the hide is applied, his bones, marrow, oil, fat, and, indeed, every part
of the carcase, are of great value.
Some
portions of the ugly beast are made subservient to the beautiful, for they are
used in the arts to give additional brilliancy to colours.
The
bones, which are susceptible of a beautiful polish like ivory, and are
transparent, are used for articles of elegant furniture and ornaments of varied
beauty.
At
some distance from Montalluyah is a large tract of country, called
"Hippopotamus Land," where there is an abundance of everything that
the beasts like or need, such as sand, moss, nut-trees, and a peculiar plant,
which is their favourite food.
Numerous
herds are kept on this land, and also in enclosures, as deer are preserved in
your parks. In charge of them are numerous herdsmen or keepers, who may be
compared to so many shepherds looking after the sheep, though the animals they
tend are far more valuable.
From
habit, the keepers understand all the ways and movements of their flock.
With
a view to startle the animals as little as possible, the keepers are clothed in
a dress made of hippopotamus-skin, the outside of which is preserved in its
natural state, and it is so arranged that the men may appear like familiar figures
to the mothers and the young, and not excite their fear.
It
is known in Montalluyah that wild beasts often attack man from fear, lest he
should do them harm.
The
skin worn by the keeper is saturated with a solution made from a
strong-smelling herb, to which the animals have great antipathy; and even
though they may approach and smell the skin, they soon turn away, without
hurting the watcher.
The
beast's antipathy to this herb was discovered by accident. It happened that a
herd of hippopotami were driven on land where it grew abundantly; they
instantly rushed furiously into the water, and, in spite of every effort and
stratagem, could not be made to return to the shore.
Suspecting
that this herb was the cause of their contumacy, we took a young hippopotamus,
and kept him without food till he became quite ravenous. Some of the tender
herbs were then brought, but he would not touch them, and evinced other
symptoms of antipathy, while he showed his ravenousness by trying to seize the
keeper. He was still kept without food, and the herbs were left within his
reach, but he would not approach them, though, as soon as some of his usual
food was brought, he greedily devoured it.
These
beasts formerly infested the rivers which run through our cities; and a very powerful
solution from the herb, which they could scent at a considerable distance, was
prepared by our chemists. We have great locks at the entrances of our rivers.
In these are concave places in which the preparation is deposited, and the
dangerous beasts are thus kept at a great distance.
In
our world the hippopotami are very fond of freshwater rivers. There is a large
stream called the Aoe, the waters of which have a peculiar attraction for these
beasts, and I have seen it covered with them for miles.
The
waters of this river are very prejudicial to man; perhaps the qualities which
make them agreeable to the beast render them antipathetic to man's
constitution.
In
their native state, the beasts like the land as much as the water, preferring
it indeed during the prevalence of certain winds. I could tell, by the
direction of these, whether few or many of the animals would come ashore. From
my observatory, I have seen thousands together a long way off, looking like
countless swarms of flies, and all moving in a compact mass, as though they
were gregarious to the highest degree. When seen from a short distance, they
look like a moving lead-colour bog. I have sent to caution the hunters, for on
occasion the large herds are dangerous.
HABITS.
There
are times when the hippopotami seek to be invisible; they then bury themselves
in the sand, and not one can be seen. At other times, miles of country are
covered with them.
When
the wind is in a particular quarter it causes a remarkable musical sound in its
passage through the hollow rocks, which seems particularly sympathetic to the
hippopotami. If, at the time the "musical sound" is heard, the sun
shines, they with great rapidity place the young ones together, running round
them as round a central point in a succession of circles. They jump and bound,
pass and repass each other, and as it were dance with joy, in a state of great
excitement continuing their energetic gambols all the time the musical sound is
heard, until, exhausted with their exertions, they lie down and sleep.
It
is a grand sight to see large herds of hippopotami so joyfully excited. They
never act thus when stimulated by fear, but stand doggedly for some time, as
though examining the cause of the disturbance, and as soon as the terror has
mastered them they rush away, running at a great speed.
When
they pair, they are generally constant to each other, and the female usually
remains at the side of her mate: but some are capricious, and go about as if
seeking other males of the herd. When the female is thus inconstant, her
partner, after a time, tries to destroy her and her young, though pains are
taken to prevent this result.
To
save the female and her young, we have occasionally been obliged to kill the
male with arrows steeped in a poison so powerful, that the slightest graze will
cause instant death.
The
mother is generally much attached to her young. She buries it in the sand,
leaving an aperture through which it may breathe, and she lies at its side. If
the temperature changes, or she fancies the calf has not sufficient heat, she
will cover the aperture for a time with her head, or some part of her body. She
gathers nuts, which the young one likes, and will sometimes wander for miles
along the strand of rivers to seek a small fish, which she kills, and brings
back to the spot where the calf has been left buried in the sand.
When
the young one is sickly, and does not respond to the signs of the mother, she
fancies the little creature does not like her, and leaves it to die.
REARING
HIPPOPOTAMI.
In
Montalluyah there are large lakes, protected and enclosed by iron-work, where
hippopotami are reared.
These
are interspersed with land, on which we deposit large quantities of sand and
moss.
We
are very successful in rearing the animals, but we take care that they should
have facilities for following their natural habits.
I
believe you have not been able to rear these beasts in Western Europe. You
might do so by observing their habits, and even by attending to a few simple
precautions. If you were once successful they would increase rapidly, and you
would soon discover their inestimable value.
This
is the course we pursue when the animal is reared in confined situations:
As
soon as the female has conceived, a quantity of sand and moss is placed on the
ground at the side of the water. This is done without loss of time, that the
beast may be accustomed to the sight. Shortly, if left to herself, she will
wallow in the mixture, and as soon as the young one is born, will place it in
the sand, covering it over with moss.
As
already observed, the female, when running wild in a state of nature, lays the
young one in the sand as soon as it is born, covering every part of the body,
and then overlaying it with moss. On this account, we take care to deposit the
sand and moss where the animal can easily find them.
The
beasts are of a very suspicious nature, and if the sand and moss were not
placed near the female until after her young one was born, she would be afraid
of them.
The
mother is treated with great kindness, and is not allowed in any way to be
teased or used harshly.
The
hippopotamus is a very nervous animal, and is besides very vicious and
irritable. The female does not easily forget an injury, particularly when with
young. If in any way used unkindly, the effects of the vexation will endure for
a long time after the birth of the young one, which will come into the world in
a weakly state, and will not thrive. If it does not soon die, the mother will
kill it; for, when ill-treated either before or after parturition, the mother
is ordinarily impelled to destroy the calf. She is often so nervous, that, when
with calf, she cannot bear to be looked at and is then placed apart in an
enclosure reserved expressly for the purpose, which is hoarded round, and no
one but the keeper is allowed to approach her.
In a
state of nature, the beast is accustomed to wander over large tracts especially
favoured by sun and light; even the water he swims in is warmed by the sun. In
the gardens in which you strive to rear these beasts, they are kept in dark
miserable places, where the water is cold, and which the sun rarely penetrates.
You are not kind to them yourselves, and, besides, you allow visitors to tease
them.
These
errors alone are sufficient to prevent the mother bringing forth a calf that
will thrive.
In
your cold and variable climates you would do well to have an enclosed place, a
kind of conservatory covered over with glass, arranged so as to be opened in
warm weather, particularly when the sun shines, and closed during the greater
part of the winter, at which time the water, in which the beasts swim, should
be warmed by a genial heat diffused through the building. This plan would be
much more profitable than your actual dear economy.
If
from any cause it is found judicious to separate the mother and the young one,
care should be taken to effect the separation immediately after the birth,
before the natural food has been tasted, or at least before it has become
familiar to the young one, and the calf should be placed where it cannot hear
the mother's moaning call.
Warmed
sand and moss should be in readiness, in which to immerse and all but cover the
little one.
Goat's
milk, or other substitutes for the mother's milk, must be administered whilst
quite warm and just drawn from the goat. If allowed to stand, the liquid would
injure instead of doing good, and even if artificially warmed would not be so
beneficial as the new milk.
It
is not improbable that the calf will at first refuse the proffered beverage.
The expedients for causing the animal to drink should be devised so as to avoid
all unnecessary annoyance, and if this precaution be attended to the animal
will of its own accord soon drink the warm milk, and take other proper food.
The
room where the young one is kept should be of an equal warmth both day and
night. In a state of nature the mother obtains this equalization of the temperature,
and protects the young one from the comparative chilliness of the night air by
lying across the sand in which she has placed the object of her care.
The
removal of the young one from the mother is effected with ease; and as this
process is with you accompanied by many inconveniences, besides being very
difficult and dangerous, a few hints as to our mode of proceeding may be of
use.
We
have four very long sockets peculiarly formed at their base, so that they can
be thrust for a long distance into the sandy ground, and there take the firmest
hold. They are placed at certain distances about the spot where the mother
lies, and into them are inserted four poles of great strength, so arranged that
they stand at the angles of a square or parallelogram, sustaining a framework
surmounted by planks sufficiently strong to support four men in case of need,
though sometimes two only are required. The men, who are very skilful, are
stationed one on each side of the plank, armed with a large strong net, made of
a soft and agreeable material, which, as soon as the young one is born, they
let down very gradually, so as to disturb the mother as little as possible.
Should she be annoyed at the appearance of the net, they hold their hands,
keeping it suspended, and as soon as she is appeased and closes her eyes, let
it down again, still very slowly, almost imperceptibly, until it has reached
the ground, close to where the young one is lying, so contriving that when the
little creature moves it will be upon the net.
As
soon as the young one is fairly on the net, the men apply several long canes
furnished with grappling-hooks, and draw up the net containing the young one.
While doing this, they throw over the mother a material which impedes her
movement, and which we call by a name that may be freely translated,
"Clinging Flannel." The animal thus encumbered cannot disentangle
herself for a few minutes, more than sufficient to secure the capture of the
little one, which, as soon as it has been raised is let down into a vehicle ready
to receive it. The instant this is done, the driver and all being in readiness,
the horses start off at full gallop, and the calf is secured in a place far out
of hearing of the mother.
We
can almost invariably tell whether the mother is likely to destroy the young
one; and if from this or other causes a separation is necessary, a similar
course is pursued, even when the mother is at large. If we had not effective
means of driving off the rest of the herd, the difficulty of the operation of
removal would be greatly increased, for, strange to say, as soon as the calf is
born numbers of hippopotami assemble at certain distances and form a wide
circle round the spot where the mother and little one are lying. They do not
interfere with or annoy them in any way, but, on the contrary, they stand
still, look at them, and utter wild, joyous sounds, as though they were pleased
with the mother and the little visitor. In Montalluyah we call this "the
hippopotamus's visit of congratulation."
Before
I describe the mode adopted when we wish to take one of the hippopotami from
the herd, I should first premise that these beasts have the sense of hearing,
acute to the highest degree, and could note even the fall of a pin. As,
therefore, it is useless to try to approach them by stealth, the keepers
approach them openly.
These
men are, however, clothed with a dress which covers every part of the body,
head and extremities indeed even the face, with the exception of the eyes, but
which is made of a very pliable material, so that the wearer has free use of
his body and limbs. It is saturated with the antipathetic solution, of which I
have spoken above.
There
is a three-cornered nut called the "lava-nut," of which the animals
are very fond, and they will go a long distance in search of it. The keepers
are provided with a quantity of these nuts, and the man with whom the animals
are most familiar throws a few to the one selected. As soon as the animal has
tasted them, he advances a few paces. The keeper, throwing more nuts, retires a
few paces; and as he continues throwing, the animal advances, the keeper
receding and throwing the nuts until he has attracted the beast for some
distance from the herd.
Near
the keeper is a party of men furnished with a low caravan, who, while the
animal is engaged eating the nuts, throw large nets over him. He struggles
violently--it is, indeed, fearful to behold him; but, in the meanwhile, a very
skilful man approaches, and throws over his head a cap or covering of a
particular kind of wool, which for the time completely blinds him. So utterly
is he cowed, that in a few minutes he is quite quiet, and it is surprising to
see the difference that a simple contrivance has effected. The caravan
immediately approaches with levers attached to it, by the aid of which the
animal is easily put on the carriage and carried off to the place of his
destination.
It
is surprising to see the immediate effect on the animal when the cap is taken
off. He is for the time quite docile, and as easily managed as a child.
An
animal thus captured is never so wild and vicious as when with the herd, and
often becomes comparatively tame.
On
the other hand, the animal increases in cunning, and if again set at liberty,
he still remembers how he was once served, and utterly disregards the nuts with
which he may be tempted.
In
our world a plant grows wild, which is much liked by the hippopotamus. It forms
a bulb which contains a sort of meal, while the stem contains a juice. In my
planet large patches of ground, particularly in the vicinity of rivers, abound
with these plants, which grow thickly together like wheat, and in long blades.
The
beast eats these plants in the green, the ripe, and the over-ripe states; and
as they are thrown up in some places when others have been exhausted, the herds
will pass over large tracts of country to get at their favourite food.
The
nearest approach to this food in your world would be parched flour mixed with
water. It would of course be preferable if the plant itself could be found.
In
confined situations, when the young are sickly, we feed them with turnips and
new milk boiled together. This compound is with us a sovereign remedy, and
almost invariably restores them, but cannot be safely administered till the
animal is at least a month old.
XLVI.
WILD
ANIMALS.
"The
hippopotamus exceeds the mite in size, strength, and usefulness to man far less
than do the riches yet concealed in the air, in the earth, in the waters, on the
land, exceed those already possessed by Montalluyah."
I
may mention here, that although the hippopotamus is to us the most valuable of
all the wild animals, nearly all other beasts furnish us with materials that
are turned to account.
The
serpent, and particularly the boa, possesses wondrous properties. Birds of
prey, many insects, and, in fact, nearly all that has life, is turned to some
use. The living animals generally contain electricity of more or less value.
A
large body of professors are kept by the State solely for the purpose of
examining the various medicinal and other qualities found in the fat, marrow,
oil, bones, and carcases of animals.
This
is the mode of capturing lions, tigers, and many other wild beasts, when it is
desirable to take them alive:
The
huntsmen selected are men of a fearless, daring nature, and of great address
and agility.
A
net of iron-work of very large dimensions is taken into the wilds most
frequented by the beast. This net is placed on the ground and covered over with
leaves and other, materials so as to be concealed from view.
Close
to one extremity of the network a pit is dug, in which is placed a hut large
enough to contain two men. The pit is then covered over, though an aperture is
left sufficiently large to admit air and to serve for observation and egress
from the hut, from the top of which is an opening corresponding to the aperture
above.
In
the centre of the net some dead goats have been previously placed with a stuff
of a very savoury odour, which the beast can smell for miles off, and which is
so strong that when he approaches, he does not scent the men in the hut.
The
rest of the hunters lie in wait in a secure place. The two concealed in the pit
are on the watch, and as soon as the beast has seized the goat or is fairly
within the net, they give the alarm by hoisting a long pole, and the men in
ambush slip out, and by a dexterous movement close all sides of the net, which
is constructed with this view, so as to form one large cage.
The
efforts of the animals to break out are useless; they first rage about in all
directions, but the joints of the net are so constructed that they yield
without breaking.
When
it is not desirable to take the animals alive their capture is more easy. One
mode of killing them is as follows:--A man stations himself among the branches
of a high tree, near the haunts of the animals, and holds a long pole which
hangs downwards, and at the end of this a dead rabbit is fixed, in which,
besides a strongly-smelling stuff, is placed a deadly poison. As soon as the
wild beast sees the rabbit, he makes a dash at the pole, seizes the rabbit,
eats it and, the effects of the poison being instantaneous, falls down almost
immediately to expire.
Dead
animals are not allowed to be brought into the city, but are flayed in the
country, where are also our manufactories and other establishments, in which
everything valuable in the carcase of the beast can be readily utilised.
Some
of our beasts are unlike yours, but the greater number are similar, though in many
of these, the nature of the animal may be somewhat different. Tigers, for
instance, are in form like those on your wilds, but are not without generosity.
Thus, they seldom attack each other except when the females are young, and
after a fight, when one of the males has prostrated the other, the victor will
lick the wounds of the vanquished in order to heal them. After this the two
will be friendly, the vanquished tiger resigning his pretensions without
further struggle.
I
will relate to you a "Tiger" incident that occurred in our world, a
long distance from Montalluyah.
THE
TIGER AND THE CHILD.
Our
hurricanes disturb wild animals, numbers of which approach the outskirts of the
towns bordering on the prairies. People are on the watch, for sometimes they
have entered the habitations.
A
curious incident occurred on the confines of one of these towns. A mother had
gone into the next house to fetch something required for her household use,
leaving her young child, about three years old, playing on the ground. The door
of her cottage was open, and she little knew that a large tiger was prowling
near. The watchers had gone into the field, and the tiger approached the
outskirts of the town, close to the hut where the child was playing, entered
through the door, and found the little innocent, who, not knowing what danger
was, allowed the animal to approach, and even patted him. The tiger crouched
down close to the pillow on which the child had been playing.
The
mother returned, and, to her horror and bewilderment, saw this huge tiger, with
her darling child fast asleep, its head resting on the belly of the animal. She
was for a moment paralysed with fear, and was unable to utter a single cry,
but, recovering herself, she ran and gave the alarm. No time was lost in
communicating with the officials, and very soon hunters and men skilled in
pursuit of wild animals were on the spot; but the comparatively short time that
elapsed was to the poor mother, who saw the child of her affection, beaming
with health, in the power of the monster.
The
huntsmen viewed the great beast, but they were at a loss what to do; for the
chief said, that if they shot him, even in the most vital part, he would most
likely, in his death-struggle, kill the child. After some consultation, they
procured a hook, fixed it firmly at the end of a long rod, and then took hold
of the child's dress and pulled it by the hook gently towards them. The
movement roused the tiger, who caught the rod in his mouth and broke it, as
though desirous to retain the child. The child woke and cried, but the tiger
licked him, and whilst so engaged the men managed to get partly over him the
iron network (used, as I have described, to secure wild beasts), so as to
disable him, and to get the child away. When the beast saw the child removed he
uttered a piercing howl, such as had never been heard before, and, strange to
say, the child was also grieved to leave the tiger, or, to use his own words,
the "large beautiful cat."
The
animal having been killed, the skin was dressed and presented to the mother of
the child.
THE
UNICORN.
There
exists an animal in my planet like your heraldic unicorn. He is very graceful,
but very ferocious, not heeding kindness, whilst harshness increases his
ferocity.
One
mode of taming him for a time was discovered--namely, to feed him with oranges!
I saw one who, a few minutes previously had been dashing about with restless
fury, and who, after eating some oranges, lay down quietly, and even licked the
hand of the keeper who had fed him with the fruit.
Particular
hurricanes bring swarms of insects, which never come near the unicorn; they
seem to have a great antipathy to him.
XLVII.
THE
SUN.
THE
ELECTRIC STAR-INSTRUMENT.
"The
infinity of the universe of worlds is but a faint reflection of the Infinite
Power that created them. By His will they were called into existence. By His
will they, and all that they contain, could be swept away in an instant!"
"Not
even in thought can ye grasp the boundlessness of His works. How then can ye
measure the infinite might of their Creator?"
My
palace stands on the highest ground in the uppermost city in Montalluyah. It is
of circular shape, and has twenty floors and terraces raised one above the
other, the circumference of each gradually diminishing from the lowest to the
highest. There are no stairs, in your sense of the word, but we are raised from
one story to the other with ease by electric power. Besides the internal
communication, there is another circular tower of considerably smaller
dimensions contiguous to the palace, with each floor of which it communicates
by a species of temporary bridge, so that persons can be moved at once to the
floor they desire to reach, without the necessity of entering the palace by a
lower floor. This communication can be suspended instantaneously by stopping
the electric generating power which acts from within the palace, and communicates
subterraneously with the "Lift" Tower.
On
the highest terrace of the palace, and dominating every part of the upper
cities, and many of the other cities of Montalluyah, is erected my Observatory,
whence I could observe the various worlds suspended in space.
We
had for a long time possessed instruments through which we could see many of
the most distant stars, but with none of these was electric power combined, and
their scope was not sufficient to solve certain problems of great interest.
Electricity,
chemistry, the knowledge of sun electricity and of the sciences generally, had,
under my system, made such marvellous strides as to convince me that an
instrument might be made not only to see the stars more plainly, but to view,
in some cases, their interior.
As
was my wont on such occasions, I assembled together all the great electricians,
scientific sun-attractors, mathematicians, oculists, opticians, and the heads
of science generally; and, after many years, my own particular Star Instrument
was constructed.
Although
this instrument is circular, and has numerous glasses, it differs materially
from your telescopes. Electrical combinations play an important part in its
operations, and for the minute examination of different worlds, a different
diffusion of electricities is necessary. The variation is regulated not by the
distance, but by the difference in the attracting power of the star, and often,
through the peculiar nature of its electricity, greater power is required to
view minutely a planet much nearer to Montalluyah than is needed for one more
distant.
The
secrets revealed to me were so great, that when I first looked through the
instrument in all its power I fainted.
With
the aid of the Star Instrument I discovered the constitution of the sun, and of
many of the stars and their inhabitants. Numbers of the stars have atmospheres
different from that of the earth and Montalluyah. Many are inhabited by beings,
of whom some partake of our nature; some are of a nature and consistency
entirely different to ours; some can only give effect to their will through a
material medium; some possess creative powers, and can, by the sole exercise of
will, invent the most lovely forms of beauty, and transmit themselves to
immeasurable distances with the rapidity of thought.
The
superiority of these in power and intelligence over man in his present state is
far greater than is the superiority of man over the insect, which can as little
understand the human soul as man with unaided powers can comprehend the Beings of
whom I have spoken.
My
Star Instrument, however, can only bring to light those Beings who, to a
certain extent at least, possess a material form, though of a consistency as
subtle as electricity. But the instrument does not possess the power of
rendering visible those Superior Beings, whom no man in his ordinary state is
permitted to see through a material medium. He only can see them even in
visions who is blessed with a superior order of light--light in power and
beauty far excelling the concentrated light known to us--a light like that
which was sometimes vouchsafed to your Holy Prophets! And unless a person be
inspired with a portion at least of that immortal light, the brightness, power,
and glory of these orders of Beings, or their ways, can neither be seen,
understood, nor even imagined.
The
discoveries made through the Star Instrument, however, are too numerous to
relate at present. I must limit myself now to little more than a few
particulars relating to the sun.
THE
SUN-OCEAN AND MOUNTAINS.
The
Sun is a mass consisting of an immense ocean, surrounded by burning mountains
of fire so huge that it would be difficult to speak of their extent, each
mountain seeming to be a world in immensity!
I
could perceive some portion of the mountains at intervals disengaged from the
fire. The rocks seen between the flames are, with, their varied colours,
magnificent beyond anything that your language can convey; though I have seen
similar colours, but of far less intensity, in some of our gorgeous sunsets.
CONTINENTS.
In
the midst of the Sun-Ocean there is a very large continent, besides many of
smaller size, which, relatively to the larger, might be called islands. These
continents are separated by seas from the large continent and from each other,
and are all thickly populated by beings which, though human, are somewhat
differently formed from ordinary man.
The
continents, though immense, are, even in their aggregate mass, small in
comparison with the hugeness of the Sun-Ocean. The nearest is at an immeasurable
distance from the mountains; and the ocean is only navigable at certain
distances from the outer continents.
HURRICANES.
From
a circle surrounding, but at an immense distance from the most extreme of the
continents, this great Sun-Ocean throws off currents of wind, terrific in their
fury, in the direction of the burning mountains. Your tempest would give but a
puny idea of the force of these winds, which indeed exceeds anything known even
in my planet, where the hurricanes are terrific.
The
winds are attracted, and their fury is increased, by the extreme heat of the
burning mountains.
The
ocean struggles, as it were, to quench the fire, while the fire contends with
the ocean, which raises its head, as though threatening to cover the topmost
mountains. However, the wind, blowing with redoubled force, supports the energy
of the fire. The power and brilliancy of the burning mass are intensified by
reflection in the huge Sun-Ocean.
There
are reparatory powers always at work to supply the waste caused by never-ceasing
combustion. There is, besides, a constant interchange of electricities between
the ocean and the burning mountains, the upheaving from the ocean bed having
probably some connection with the reparatory powers.
It
has been ascertained, I should say, in Montalluyah that fire is produced by the
union of certain electricities with a peculiar gas; and it is believed that
these electricities are constantly attracted to the mountains, where they
maintain combustion, and that when their nature is changed by the process, they
attract other electricities with which they combine, and the compound
electricity assists in replenishing the material that attracts the necessary
elementary forces to support combustion.
The
effect of the burning mountains on the continents in the Sun-Ocean is mitigated
by the direction of the winds and other causes, but the heat is nevertheless
fiery in its intensity.
Every
planet has an electricity of its own, more or less sympathetic to the sun, and,
consequently, more or less powerful in attracting his rays. Many planets at a
greater distance feel his heat more than others less remote. There are stars
where the sun is not even seen, but where, through the effect of his influence,
there is perpetual spring.
In
my planet the sun, even in material form, presents to the naked eye an aspect
different to yours. It not only seems to be much larger, but one of its
extremities has a globular form, whilst the rest presents the appearance of a
large mass ending in three long peaks or indentations. Although so different in
appearance, it is the same sun that illumines your earth.
Most
of the stars are wholly or partly girded and intersected by seas, which assist
in giving them, their luminous and twinkling appearance. To us your earth has
the appearance to the-naked eye of two separate brilliant stars.
COMETS.
Comets
are stars where large bodies of the waters have overflowed, rarefied and
distended by electrical attractions and repulsions. The overflowing of the
waters often makes the star visible when it would otherwise pass unperceived.
Some
of these overflowings take place periodically; others are the result of what
may be called accident. It is probable that your world, at the Flood, appeared
like a comet to the inhabitants of other terrestrial stars where, till then, it
had been invisible.
There
are huge masses of water in space corresponding to the expression of "the
waters which are above the firmament," and many of these masses of water
appear like stars when seen from our planet.
* *
* * *
The great
Star Instrument had brought to my view the palpable features of the Sun and the
other planets. By means, not unlike those to which you are indebted for these
communications, I acquired the knowledge of other facts which from their nature
are not within the immediate scope of the instrument, but which were often
confirmed by and served to explain many facts which the instrument itself had
revealed. I used for good ends the knowledge thus vouchsafed me, and was from
time to time rewarded with further revelations rich with hints which greatly
aided me in perfecting the measures I had initiated for the REGENERATION of the
WORLD entrusted to my charge.
THE
END.
* *
* * *
LONDON:
PRINTED BY WILLIAM CLOWES AND SONS, STAMFORD STREET, AND CHARING CROSS.
End
of Project Gutenberg's Another World, by Benjamin Lumley (AKA Hermes)
***
END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK ANOTHER WORLD ***
*****
This file should be named 16503-8.txt or 16503-8.zip ***** This and all
associated files of various formats will be found in:
http://www.gutenberg.org/1/6/5/0/16503/
Produced
by Clare Boothby, Donald Perry and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at
http://www.pgdp.net
Updated
editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will be renamed.
Creating
the works from public domain print editions means that no one owns a United
States copyright in these works, so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and
distribute it in the United States without permission and without paying
copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm
electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark.
Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you charge
for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you do not charge
anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the rules is very easy. You
may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation of derivative works,
reports, performances and research. They may be modified and printed and given
away--you may do practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution
is subject to the trademark license, especially commercial redistribution.
***
START: FULL LICENSE ***
THE
FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE
THIS WORK
To
protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free distribution of
electronic works, by using or distributing this work (or any other work
associated in any way with the phrase "Project Gutenberg"), you agree
to comply with all the terms of the Full Project Gutenberg-tm License
(available with this file or online at http://gutenberg.net/license).
Section
1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
works
1.A.
By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work, you
indicate that you have read, understand, agree to and accept all the terms of
this license and intellectual property (trademark/copyright) agreement. If you
do not agree to abide by all the terms of this agreement, you must cease using
and return or destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
your possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or entity to
whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
1.B.
"Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be used on
or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who agree to be
bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few things that you can do
with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works even without complying with the
full terms of this agreement. See paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of
things you can do with Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the
terms of this agreement and help preserve free future access to Project
Gutenberg-tm electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
1.C.
The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an individual work
is in the public domain in the United States and you are located in the United
States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing,
performing, displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long
as all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope that you
will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to
electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance
with the terms of this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name
associated with the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this
agreement by keeping this work in the same format with its attached full
Project Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
1.D.
The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern what you can
do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in a constant state of
change. If you are outside the United States, check the laws of your country in
addition to the terms of this agreement before downloading, copying, displaying,
performing, distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations
concerning the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
States.
1.E.
Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
1.E.1.
The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate access to, the
full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently whenever any copy of
a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the phrase "Project
Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project Gutenberg"
is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed, copied or
distributed:
This
eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with almost no restrictions
whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms of the
Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
www.gutenberg.net
1.E.2.
If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived from the
public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is posted with
permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to
anyone in the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or obtain
permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set
forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
1.E.3.
If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted with the
permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution must comply with
both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional terms imposed by the
copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm
License for all works posted with the permission of the copyright holder found
at the beginning of this work.
1.E.4.
Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm License terms
from this work, or any files containing a part of this work or any other work
associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
1.E.5.
Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this electronic work,
or any part of this electronic work, without prominently displaying the
sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with active links or immediate access to
the full terms of the Project Gutenberg-tm License.
1.E.6.
You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary, compressed, marked
up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any word processing or
hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or distribute copies of a
Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than "Plain Vanilla
ASCII" or other format used in the official version posted on the official
Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.net), you must, at no additional
cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy,
or a means of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original
"Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must
include the full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
1.E.7.
Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying, performing, copying or
distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works unless you comply with paragraph
1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
1.E.8.
You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing access to or
distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided that
-
You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from the use of
Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method you already use to
calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed to the owner of the Project
Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has agreed to donate royalties under this
paragraph to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty
payments must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you prepare
(or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project Gutenberg
Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in Section 4,
"Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
Foundation."
-
You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies you in
writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he does not agree to
the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm License. You must require such a
user to return or destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical
medium and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of Project
Gutenberg-tm works.
-
You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any money
paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the electronic work is discovered
and reported to you within 90 days of receipt of the work.
-
You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free distribution of
Project Gutenberg-tm works.
1.E.9.
If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
work or group of works on different terms than are set forth in this agreement,
you must obtain permission in writing from both the Project Gutenberg Literary
Archive Foundation and Michael Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm
trademark. Contact the Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
1.F.
1.F.1.
Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable effort to
identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread public domain
works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts,
Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works, and the medium on which they may be
stored, may contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to,
incomplete, inaccurate or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or
other intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other
medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
your equipment.
1.F.2.
LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right of
Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project Gutenberg
Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark,
and any other party distributing a Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work under
this agreement, disclaim all liability to you for damages, costs and expenses,
including legal fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE,
STRICT LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE PROVIDED
IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY
DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT,
INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE
OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGE.
1.F.3.
LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a defect in this
electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can receive a refund of the
money (if any) you paid for it by sending a written explanation to the person
you received the work from. If you received the work on a physical medium, you
must return the medium with your written explanation. The person or entity that
provided you with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to receive the
work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy is also defective,
you may demand a refund in writing without further opportunities to fix the
problem.
1.F.4.
Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth in paragraph
1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY
KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF
MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
1.F.5.
Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied warranties or the
exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages. If any disclaimer or
limitation set forth in this agreement violates the law of the state applicable
to this agreement, the agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum
disclaimer or limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity
or unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
remaining provisions.
1.F.6.
INDEMNITY
-
You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the trademark owner, any agent
or employee of the Foundation, anyone providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
electronic works in accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers
associated with the production, promotion and distribution of Project
Gutenberg-tm electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of the
following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any
Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or
deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
Section
2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
Project
Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of electronic works in
formats readable by the widest variety of computers including obsolete, old,
middle-aged and new computers. It exists because of the efforts of hundreds of
volunteers and donations from people in all walks of life.
Volunteers
and financial support to provide volunteers with the assistance they need, is
critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's goals and ensuring that the Project
Gutenberg-tm collection will remain freely available for generations to come.
In 2001, the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to
provide a secure and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
Section
3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
The
Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit 501(c)(3)
educational corporation organized under the laws of the state of Mississippi
and granted tax exempt status by the Internal Revenue Service. The Foundation's
EIN or federal tax identification number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is
posted at http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
The
Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S. Fairbanks, AK,
99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered throughout numerous
locations. Its business office is located at 809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake
City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email business@pglaf.org. Email contact links
and up to date contact information can be found at the Foundation's web site
and official page at http://pglaf.org
For
additional contact information: Dr. Gregory B. Newby Chief Executive and
Director gbnewby@pglaf.org
Section
4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
Foundation
Project
Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide spread public support
and donations to carry out its mission of increasing the number of public
domain and licensed works that can be freely distributed in machine readable
form accessible by the widest array of equipment including outdated equipment.
Many small donations ($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining
tax exempt status with the IRS.
The
Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating charities and
charitable donations in all 50 states of the United States. Compliance
requirements are not uniform and it takes a considerable effort, much paperwork
and many fees to meet and keep up with these requirements. We do not solicit
donations in locations where we have not received written confirmation of
compliance. To SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
particular state visit http://pglaf.org
While
we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we have not met
the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition against accepting
unsolicited donations from donors in such states who approach us with offers to
donate.
International
donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make any statements concerning
tax treatment of donations received from outside the United States. U.S. laws
alone swamp our small staff.
Please
check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation methods and
addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other ways including including
checks, online payments and credit card donations. To donate, please visit:
http://pglaf.org/donate
Section
5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works.
Professor
Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm concept of a
library of electronic works that could be freely shared with anyone. For thirty
years, he produced and distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a
loose network of volunteer support.
Project
Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed editions, all of
which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S. unless a copyright notice is
included. Thus, we do not necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any
particular paper edition.
Most
people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
http://www.gutenberg.net
This
Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm, including how to make
donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, how to help
produce our new eBooks, and how to subscribe to our email newsletter to hear
about new eBooks.
Another
World
from
http://manybooks.net/